summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/3282-h
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authorRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-15 05:20:53 -0700
committerRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-15 05:20:53 -0700
commitc19970808eb8ac507d76a03c401f353a91e77a2e (patch)
tree8d46debdd608871432e545d282260d8a8dd9a1d5 /3282-h
initial commit of ebook 3282HEADmain
Diffstat (limited to '3282-h')
-rw-r--r--3282-h/3282-h.htm13497
1 files changed, 13497 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/3282-h/3282-h.htm b/3282-h/3282-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..5439d61
--- /dev/null
+++ b/3282-h/3282-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,13497 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
+"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
+<head>
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
+<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Brown Fairy Book, by Various</title>
+
+<style type="text/css" xml:space="preserve">
+
+body { margin-left: 20%;
+ margin-right: 20%;
+ text-align: justify; }
+
+h1, h2, h3, h4, h5 {text-align: center; font-style: normal; font-weight:
+normal; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: .5em; margin-bottom: .5em;}
+
+h1 {font-size: 300%;
+ margin-top: 0.6em;
+ margin-bottom: 0.6em;
+ letter-spacing: 0.12em;
+ word-spacing: 0.2em;
+ text-indent: 0em;}
+h2 {font-size: 150%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
+h3 {font-size: 130%; margin-top: 1em;}
+h4 {font-size: 120%;}
+h5 {font-size: 110%;}
+
+.no-break {page-break-before: avoid;} /* for epubs */
+
+div.chapter {page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em;}
+
+hr {width: 80%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em;}
+
+p {text-indent: 1em;
+ margin-top: 0.25em;
+ margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
+
+p.center {text-align: center;
+ text-indent: 0em;
+ margin-top: 1em;
+ margin-bottom: 1em; }
+
+p.footnote {font-size: 90%;
+ text-indent: 0%;
+ margin-left: 10%;
+ margin-right: 10%;
+ margin-top: 1em;
+ margin-bottom: 1em; }
+
+sup { vertical-align: top; font-size: 0.6em; }
+
+a:link {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
+a:visited {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
+a:hover {color:red}
+
+</style>
+</head>
+<body>
+
+<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Brown Fairy Book</div>
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
+most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
+whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
+of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
+at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
+are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
+country where you are located before using this eBook.
+</div>
+<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The Brown Fairy Book</div>
+<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Various</div>
+<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Editor: Andrew Lang</div>
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: March 12, 2001 [eBook #3282]<br />
+[Most recently updated: March 14, 2023]</div>
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
+<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: J.C. Byers, L.M. Shaffer and David Widger</div>
+<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BROWN FAIRY BOOK ***</div>
+
+<h1>THE BROWN FAIRY BOOK</h1>
+
+<h2 class="no-break">Edited by Andrew Lang</h2>
+
+<hr />
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<p class="center">
+Dedicated<br/>
+to<br/>
+Diana Scott Lang
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap00"></a>
+Preface</h2>
+
+<p>
+The stories in this Fairy Book come from all quarters of the world. For
+example, the adventures of “Ball-Carrier and the Bad One” are told by Red
+Indian grandmothers to Red Indian children who never go to school, nor see pen
+and ink. “The Bunyip” is known to even more uneducated little ones, running
+about with no clothes at all in the bush, in Australia. You may see photographs
+of these merry little black fellows before their troubles begin, in “Northern
+Races of Central Australia,” by Messrs. Spencer and Gillen. They have no
+lessons except in tracking and catching birds, beasts, fishes, lizards, and
+snakes, all of which they eat. But when they grow up to be big boys and girls,
+they are cruelly cut about with stone knives and frightened with sham bogies
+all for their good their parents say and I think they would rather go to
+school, if they had their choice, and take their chance of being birched and
+bullied. However, many boys might think it better fun to begin to learn hunting
+as soon as they can walk. Other stories, like “The Sacred Milk of Koumongoé,”
+come from the Kaffirs in Africa, whose dear papas are not so poor as those in
+Australia, but have plenty of cattle and milk, and good mealies to eat, and
+live in houses like very big bee-hives, and wear clothes of a sort, though not
+very like our own. “Pivi and Kabo” is a tale from the brown people in the
+island of New Caledonia, where a boy is never allowed to speak to or even look
+at his own sisters; nobody knows why, so curious are the manners of this remote
+island. The story shows the advantages of good manners and pleasant behaviour;
+and the natives do not now cook and eat each other, but live on fish,
+vegetables, pork, and chickens, and dwell in houses. “What the Rose did to the
+Cypress,” is a story from Persia, where the people, of course, are civilised,
+and much like those of whom you read in “The Arabian Nights.” Then there are
+tales like “The Fox and the Lapp” from the very north of Europe, where it is
+dark for half the year and day-light for the other half. The Lapps are a people
+not fond of soap and water, and very much given to art magic. Then there are
+tales from India, told to Major Campbell, who wrote them out, by Hindoos; these
+stories are “Wali Dâd the Simple-hearted,” and “The King who would be Stronger
+than Fate,” but was not so clever as his daughter. From Brazil, in South
+America, comes “The Tortoise and the Mischievous Monkey,” with the adventures
+of other animals. Other tales are told in various parts of Europe, and in many
+languages; but all people, black, white, brown, red, and yellow, are like each
+other when they tell stories; for these are meant for children, who like the
+same sort of thing, whether they go to school and wear clothes, or, on the
+other hand, wear skins of beasts, or even nothing at all, and live on grubs and
+lizards and hawks and crows and serpents, like the little Australian blacks.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The tale of “What the Rose did to the Cypress,” is translated out of a Persian
+manuscript by Mrs. Beveridge. “Pivi and Kabo” is translated by the Editor from
+a French version; “Asmund and Signy” by Miss Blackley; the Indian stories by
+Major Campbell, and all the rest are told by Mrs. Lang, who does not give them
+exactly as they are told by all sorts of outlandish natives, but makes them up
+in the hope white people will like them, skipping the pieces which they will
+not like. That is how this Fairy Book was made up for your entertainment.
+</p>
+
+<hr />
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2>CONTENTS</h2>
+
+<table summary="" style="">
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap00">Preface</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap01">What the Rose did to the Cypress</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#link2H_FOOT">Footnotes</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap02">Ball-carrier and the Bad One</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap03">How Ball-carrier Finished His Task</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap04">The Bunyip</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap05">Father Grumbler</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap06">The Story of the Yara</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap07">The Cunning Hare</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap08">The Turtle and His Bride</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap09">How Geirald The Coward Was Punished</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap10">Hábogi</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap11">How the Little Brother Set Free His Big Brothers</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap12">The Sacred Milk of Koumongoé</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap13">The Wicked Wolverine</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap14">The Husband of the Rat’s Daughter</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap15">The Mermaid and the Boy</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap16">Pivi and Kabo</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap17">The Elf Maiden</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap18">How Some Wild Animals Became Tame Ones</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap19">Fortune and the Wood-Cutter</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap20">The Enchanted Head</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap21">The Sister of the Sun</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap22">The Prince and the Three Fates</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap23">The Fox and the Lapp</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap24">Kisa the Cat</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap25">The Lion and the Cat</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap26">Which was the Foolishest?</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap27">Asmund and Signy</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap28">Rübezahl</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap29">Story Of The King Who Would Be Stronger Than Fate</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap30">Story of Wali Dâd the Simple-Hearted</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap31">Tale of a Tortoise and of a Mischievous Monkey</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+<tr>
+<td> <a href="#chap32">The Knights of the Fish</a></td>
+</tr>
+
+</table>
+
+<hr />
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2>The Brown Fairy Book</h2>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap01"></a>
+What the Rose did to the Cypress<a href="#linknote-1"
+name="linknoteref-1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time a great king of the East, named Saman-lalposh,<a
+href="#linknote-2" name="linknoteref-2"><sup>[2]</sup></a> had three brave
+and clever sons—Tahmasp, Qamas, and Almas-ruh-baksh.<a href="#linknote-3"
+name="linknoteref-3"><sup>[3]</sup></a> One day, when the king was sitting in
+his hall of audience, his eldest son, Prince Tahmasp, came before him, and
+after greeting his father with due respect, said: “O my royal father! I am
+tired of the town; if you will give me leave, I will take my servants to-morrow
+and will go into the country and hunt on the hill-skirts; and when I have taken
+some game I will come back, at evening-prayer time.” His father consented, and
+sent with him some of his own trusted servants, and also hawks, and falcons,
+hunting dogs, cheetahs and leopards.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At the place where the prince intended to hunt he saw a most beautiful deer. He
+ordered that it should not be killed, but trapped or captured with a noose. The
+deer looked about for a place where he might escape from the ring of the
+beaters, and spied one unwatched close to the prince himself. It bounded high
+and leaped right over his head, got out of the ring, and tore like the eastern
+wind into the waste. The prince put spurs to his horse and pursued it; and was
+soon lost to the sight of his followers. Until the world-lighting sun stood
+above his head in the zenith he did not take his eyes off the deer; suddenly it
+disappeared behind some rising ground, and with all his search he could not
+find any further trace of it. He was now drenched in sweat, and he breathed
+with pain; and his horse’s tongue hung from its mouth with thirst. He
+dismounted and toiled on, with bridle on arm, praying and casting himself on
+the mercy of heaven. Then his horse fell and surrendered its life to God. On
+and on he went across the sandy waste, weeping and with burning breast, till at
+length a hill rose into sight. He mustered his strength and climbed to the top,
+and there he found a giant tree whose foot kept firm the wrinkled earth, and
+whose crest touched the very heaven. Its branches had put forth a glory of
+leaves, and there were grass and a spring underneath it, and flowers of many
+colours.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Gladdened by this sight, he dragged himself to the water’s edge, drank his
+fill, and returned thanks for his deliverance from thirst.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He looked about him and, to his amazement, saw close by a royal seat. While he
+was pondering what could have brought this into the merciless desert, a man
+drew near who was dressed like a faqir, and had bare head and feet, but walked
+with the free carriage of a person of rank. His face was kind, and wise and
+thoughtful, and he came on and spoke to the prince.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O good youth! how did you come here? Who are you? Where do you come from?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince told everything just as it had happened to him, and then
+respectfully added: “I have made known my own circumstances to you, and now I
+venture to beg you to tell me your own. Who are you? How did you come to make
+your dwelling in this wilderness?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+To this the faqir replied: “O youth! it would be best for you to have nothing
+to do with me and to know nothing of my fortunes, for my story is fit neither
+for telling nor for hearing.” The prince, however, pleaded so hard to be told,
+that at last there was nothing to be done but to let him hear.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Learn and know, O young man! that I am King Janangir<a href="#linknote-4"
+name="linknoteref-4" ><sup>[4]</sup></a> of Babylon, and that once I had army
+and servants, family and treasure; untold wealth and belongings. The Most High
+God gave me seven sons who grew up well versed in all princely arts. My eldest
+son heard from travellers that in Turkistan, on the Chinese frontier, there is
+a king named Quimus, the son of Timus, and that he has an only child, a
+daughter named Mihr-afruz,<a href="#linknote-5"
+name="linknoteref-5"><sup>[5]</sup></a> who, under all the azure heaven, is
+unrivalled for beauty. Princes come from all quarters to ask her hand, and on
+one and all she imposes a condition. She says to them: ‘I know a riddle; and I
+will marry anyone who answers it, and will bestow on him all my possessions.
+But if a suitor cannot answer my question I cut off his head and hang it on the
+battlements of the citadel.’ The riddle she asks is, ‘What did the rose do to
+the cypress?’
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now, when my son heard this tale, he fell in love with that unseen girl, and
+he came to me lamenting and bewailing himself. Nothing that I could say had the
+slightest effect on him. I said: ‘Oh my son! if there must be fruit of this
+fancy of yours, I will lead forth a great army against King Quimus. If he will
+give you his daughter freely, well and good; and if not, I will ravage his
+kingdom and bring her away by force.’ This plan did not please him; he said:
+‘It is not right to lay a kingdom waste and to destroy a palace so that I may
+attain my desire. I will go alone; I will answer the riddle, and win her in
+this way.’ At last, out of pity for him, I let him go. He reached the city of
+King Quimus. He was asked the riddle and could not give the true answer; and
+his head was cut off and hung upon the battlements. Then I mourned him in black
+raiment for forty days.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After this another and another of my sons were seized by the same desire, and
+in the end all my seven sons went, and all were killed. In grief for their
+death I have abandoned my throne, and I abide here in this desert, withholding
+my hand from all State business and wearing myself away in sorrow.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Prince Tahmasp listened to this tale, and then the arrow of love for that
+unseen girl struck his heart also. Just at this moment of his ill-fate his
+people came up, and gathered round him like moths round a light. They brought
+him a horse, fleet as the breeze of the dawn; he set his willing foot in the
+stirrup of safety and rode off. As the days went by the thorn of love rankled
+in his heart, and he became the very example of lovers, and grew faint and
+feeble. At last his confidants searched his heart and lifted the veil from the
+face of his love, and then set the matter before his father, King
+Saman-lal-posh. “Your son, Prince Tahmasp, loves distractedly the Princess
+Mihr-afruz, daughter of King Quimus, son of Timus.” Then they told the king all
+about her and her doings. A mist of sadness clouded the king’s mind, and he
+said to his son: “If this thing is so, I will in the first place send a courier
+with friendly letters to King Quimus, and will ask the hand of his daughter for
+you. I will send an abundance of gifts, and a string of camels laden with
+flashing stones and rubies of Badakhsham In this way I will bring her and her
+suite, and I will give her to you to be your solace. But if King Quimus is
+unwilling to give her to you, I will pour a whirlwind of soldiers upon him, and
+I will bring to you, in this way, that most consequential of girls.” But the
+prince said that this plan would not be right, and that he would go himself,
+and would answer the riddle. Then the king’s wise men said: “This is a very
+weighty matter; it would be best to allow the prince to set out accompanied by
+some persons in whom you have confidence. Maybe he will repent and come back.”
+So King Saman ordered all preparations for the journey to be made, and then
+Prince Tahmasp took his leave and set out, accompanied by some of the
+courtiers, and taking with him a string of two-humped and raven-eyed camels
+laden with jewels, and gold, and costly stuffs.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By stage after stage, and after many days’ journeying, he arrived at the city
+of King Quimus. What did he see? A towering citadel whose foot kept firm the
+wrinkled earth, and whose battlements touched the blue heaven. He saw hanging
+from its battlements many heads, but it had not the least effect upon him that
+these were heads of men of rank; he listened to no advice about laying aside
+his fancy, but rode up to the gate and on into the heart of the city. The place
+was so splendid that the eyes of the ages have never seen its like, and there,
+in an open square, he found a tent of crimson satin set up, and beneath it two
+jewelled drums with jewelled sticks. These drums were put there so that the
+suitors of the princess might announce their arrival by beating on them, after
+which some one would come and take them to the king’s presence. The sight of
+the drums stirred the fire of Prince Tahmasp’s love. He dismounted, and moved
+towards them; but his companions hurried after and begged him first to let them
+go and announce him to the king, and said that then, when they had put their
+possessions in a place of security, they would enter into the all important
+matter of the princess. The prince, however, replied that he was there for one
+thing only; that his first duty was to beat the drums and announce himself as a
+suitor, when he would be taken, as such, to the king, who would then give him
+proper lodgment. So he struck upon the drums, and at once summoned an officer
+who took him to King Quimus.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the king saw how very young the prince looked, and that he was still
+drinking of the fountain of wonder, he said: “O youth! leave aside this fancy
+which my daughter has conceived in the pride of her beauty. No one can answer
+er her riddle, and she has done to death many men who had had no pleasure in
+life nor tasted its charms. God forbid that your spring also should be ravaged
+by the autumn winds of martyrdom.” All his urgency, however, had no effect in
+making the prince withdraw. At length it was settled between them that three
+days should be given to pleasant hospitality and that then should follow what
+had to be said and done. Then the prince went to his own quarters and was
+treated as became his station.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+King Quimus now sent for his daughter and for her mother, Gulrukh,<a
+href="#linknote-6" name="linknoteref-6"><sup>[6]</sup></a> and talked to
+them. He said to Mibrafruz: “Listen to me, you cruel flirt! Why do you persist
+in this folly? Now there has come to ask your hand a prince of the east, so
+handsome that the very sun grows modest before the splendour of his face; he is
+rich, and he has brought gold and jewels, all for you, if you will marry him. A
+better husband you will not find.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But all the arguments of father and mother were wasted, for her only answer
+was: “O my father! I have sworn to myself that I will not marry, even if a
+thousand years go by, unless someone answers my riddle, and that I will give
+myself to that man only who does answer it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The three days passed; then the riddle was asked: “What did the rose do to the
+cypress?” The prince had an eloquent tongue, which could split a hair, and
+without hesitation he replied to her with a verse: “Only the Omnipotent has
+knowledge of secrets; if any man says, ‘I know’ do not believe him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then a servant fetched in the polluted, blue-eyed headsman, who asked: “Whose
+sun of life has come near its setting?” took the prince by the arm, placed him
+upon the cloth of execution, and then, all merciless and stony hearted, cut his
+head from his body and hung it on the battlements.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The news of the death of Prince Tahmasp plunged his father into despair and
+stupefaction. He mourned for him in black raiment for forty days; and then, a
+few days later, his second son, Prince Qamas, extracted from him leave to go
+too; and he, also, was put to death. One son only now remained, the brave,
+eloquent, happy-natured Prince Almas-ruh-bakhsh. One day, when his father sat
+brooding over his lost children, Almas came before him and said: “O father
+mine! the daughter of King Quimus has done my two brothers to death; I wish to
+avenge them upon her.” These words brought his father to tears. “O light of
+your father!” he cried, “I have no one left but you, and now you ask me to let
+you go to your death.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Dear father!” pleaded the prince, “until I have lowered the pride of that
+beauty, and have set her here before you, I cannot settle down or indeed sit
+down off my feet.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In the end he, too, got leave to go; but he went a without a following and
+alone. Like his brothers, he made the long journey to the city of Quimus the
+son of Timus; like them he saw the citadel, but he saw there the heads of
+Tahmasp and Qamas. He went about in the city, saw the tent and the drums, and
+then went out again to a village not far off. Here he found out a very old man
+who had a wife 120 years old, or rather more. Their lives were coming to their
+end, but they had never beheld face of child of their own. They were glad when
+the prince came to their house, and they dealt with him as with a son. He put
+all his belongings into their charge, and fastened his horse in their
+out-house. Then he asked them not to speak of him to anyone, and to keep his
+affairs secret. He exchanged his royal dress for another, and next morning,
+just as the sun looked forth from its eastern oratory, he went again into the
+city. He turned over in his mind without ceasing how he was to find out the
+meaning of the riddle, and to give them a right answer, and who could help him,
+and how to avenge his brothers. He wandered about the city, but heard nothing
+of service, for there was no one in all that land who understood the riddle of
+Princess Mihr-afruz.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day he thought he would go to her own palace and see if he could learn
+anything there, so he went out to her garden-house. It was a very splendid
+place, with a wonderful gateway, and walls like Alexander’s ramparts. Many
+gate-keepers were on guard, and there was no chance of passing them. His heart
+was full of bitterness, but he said to himself: “All will be well! it is here I
+shall get what I want.” He went round outside the garden wall hoping to find a
+gap, and he made supplication in the Court of Supplications and prayed, “O
+Holder of the hand of the helpless! show me my way.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+While he prayed he bethought himself that he could get into the garden with a
+stream of inflowing water. He looked carefully round, fearing to be seen,
+stripped, slid into the stream and was carried within the great walls. There he
+hid himself till his loin cloth was dry. The garden was a very Eden, with
+running water amongst its lawns, with flowers and the lament of doves and the
+jug-jug of nightingales. It was a place to steal the senses from the brain, and
+he wandered about and saw the house, but there seemed to be no one there. In
+the forecourt was a royal seat of polished jasper, and in the middle of the
+platform was a basin of purest water that flashed like a mirror. He pleased
+himself with these sights for a while, and then went back to the garden and hid
+himself from the gardeners and passed the night. Next morning he put on the
+appearance of a madman and wandered about till he came to a lawn where several
+pert-faced girls were amusing themselves. On a throne, jewelled and overspread
+with silken stuffs, sat a girl the splendour of whose beauty lighted up the
+place, and whose ambergris and attar perfumed the whole air. “That must be
+Mihrafruz,” he thought, “she is indeed lovely.” Just then one of the attendants
+came to the water’s edge to fill a cup, and though the prince was in hiding,
+his face was reflected in the water. When she saw this image she was
+frightened, and let her cup fall into the stream, and thought, “Is it an angel,
+or a peri, or a man?” Fear and trembling took hold of her, and she screamed as
+women scream. Then some of the other girls came and took her to the princess
+who asked: “What is the matter, pretty one?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O princess! I went for water, and I saw an image, and I was afraid.” So
+another girl went to the water and saw the same thing, and came back with the
+same story. The princess wished to see for herself; she rose and paced to the
+spot with the march of a prancing peacock. When she saw the image she said to
+her nurse: “Find out who is reflected in the water, and where he lives.” Her
+words reached the prince’s ear, he lifted up his head; she saw him and beheld
+beauty such as she had never seen before. She lost a hundred hearts to him, and
+signed to her nurse to bring him to her presence. The prince let himself be
+persuaded to go with the nurse, but when the princess questioned him as to who
+he was and how he had got into her garden, he behaved like a man out of his
+mind—sometimes smiling, sometimes crying, and saying: “I am hungry,” Or words
+misplaced and random, civil mixed with the rude.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What a pity!” said the princess, “he is mad!” As she liked him she said: “He
+is my madman; let no one hurt him.” She took him to her house and told him not
+to go away, for that she would provide for all his wants. The prince thought,
+“It would be excellent if here, in her very house, I could get the answer to
+her riddle; but I must be silent, on pain of death.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now in the princess’s household there was a girl called Dil-aram<a
+href="#linknote-7" name="linknoteref-7"><sup>[7]</sup></a>; she it was who
+had first seen the image of the prince. She came to love him very much, and she
+spent day and night thinking how she could make her affection known to him. One
+day she escaped from the princess’s notice and went to the prince, and laid her
+head on his feet and said: “Heaven has bestowed on you beauty and charm. Tell
+me your secret; who are you, and how did you come here? I love you very much,
+and if you would like to leave this place I will go with you. I have wealth
+equal to the treasure of the miserly Qarun.” But the prince only made answer
+like a man distraught, and told her nothing. He said to himself, “God forbid
+that the veil should be taken in vain from my secret; that would indeed
+disgrace me.” So, with streaming eyes and burning breast, Dil-aram arose and
+went to her house and lamented and fretted.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now whenever the princess commanded the prince’s attendance, Dil-aram, of all
+the girls, paid him attention and waited on him best. The princess noticed
+this, and said: “O Dil-aram! you must take my madman into your charge and give
+him whatever he wants.” This was the very thing Dilaram had prayed for. A
+little later she took the prince into a private place and she made him take an
+oath of secrecy, and she herself took one and swore, “By Heaven! I will not
+tell your secret. Tell me all about yourself so that I may help you to get what
+you want.” The prince now recognised in her words the perfume of true love, and
+he made compact with her. “O lovely girl! I want to know what the rose did to
+the cypress. Your mistress cuts off men’s heads because of this riddle; what is
+at the bottom of it, and why does she do it?” Then Dil-aram answered: “If you
+will promise to marry me and to keep me always amongst those you favour, I will
+tell you all I know, and I will keep watch about the riddle.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O lovely girl,” rejoined he, “if I accomplish my purpose, so that I need no
+longer strive for it, I will keep my compact with you. When I have this woman
+in my power and have avenged my brothers, I will make you my solace.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O wealth of my life and source of my joy!” responded Dil-aram, “I do not know
+what the rose did to the cypress; but so much I know that the person who told
+Mihr-afruz about it is a negro whom she hides under her throne. He fled here
+from Waq of the Caucasus—it is there you must make inquiry; there is no other
+way of getting at the truth.“On hearing these words, the prince said to his
+heart, “O my heart! your task will yet wear away much of your life.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He fell into long and far thought, and Dil-aram looked at him and said: “O my
+life and my soul! do not be sad. If you would like this woman killed, I will
+put poison into her cup so that she will never lift her head from her drugged
+sleep again.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O Dil-aram! such a vengeance is not manly. I shall not rest till I have gone
+to Waq of the Caucasus and have cleared up the matter.” Then they repeated the
+agreement about their marriage, and bade one another goodbye.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince now went back to the village, and told the old man that he was
+setting out on a long journey, and begged him not to be anxious, and to keep
+safe the goods which had been entrusted to him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince had not the least knowledge of the way to Waq of the Caucasus, and
+was cast down by the sense of his helplessness. He was walking along by his
+horse’s side when there appeared before him an old man of serene countenance,
+dressed in green and carrying a staff, who resembled Khizr.<a
+href="#linknote-8" name="linknoteref-8"><sup>[8]</sup></a> The prince thanked
+heaven, laid the hands of reverence on his breast and salaamed. The old man
+returned the greeting graciously, and asked: “How fare you? Whither are you
+bound? You look like a traveller.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O revered saint! I am in this difficulty: I do not know the way to Waq of the
+Caucasus.” The old man of good counsel looked at the young prince and said:
+“Turn back from this dangerous undertaking. Do not go; choose some other task!
+If you had a hundred lives you would not bring one out safe from this journey.”
+But his words had no effect on the prince’s resolve. “What object have you,”
+the old man asked, “in thus consuming your life?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I have an important piece of business to do, and only this journey makes it
+possible. I must go; I pray you, ill God’s name, tell me the way.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the saint saw that the prince was not to be moved, he said: “Learn and
+know, O youth! that Waq of Qaf is in the Caucasus and is a dependency of it. In
+it there are jins, demons, and peris. You must go on along this road till it
+forks into three; take neither the right hand nor the left, but the middle
+path. Follow this for a day and a night. Then you will come to a column on
+which is a marble slab inscribed with Cufic characters. Do what is written
+there; beware of disobedience.” Then he gave his good wishes for the journey
+and his blessing, and the prince kissed his feet, said good-bye, and, with
+thanks to the Causer of Causes, took the road.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After a day and a night he saw the column rise in silent beauty to the heavens.
+Everything was as the wise old man had said it would be, and the prince, who
+was skilled in all tongues, read the following Cufic inscription: “O
+travellers! be it known to you that this column has been set up with its tablet
+to give true directions about these roads. If a man would pass his life in ease
+and pleasantness, let him take the right-hand path. If he take the left, he
+will have some trouble, but he will reach his goal without much delay. Woe to
+him who chooses the middle path! if he had a thousand lives he would not save
+one; it is very hazardous; it leads to the Caucasus, and is an endless road.
+Beware of it!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince read and bared his head and lifted his hands in supplication to Him
+who has no needs, and prayed, “O Friend of the traveller! I, Thy servant, come
+to Thee for succour. My purpose lies in the land of Qaf and my road is full of
+peril. Lead me by it.” Then he took a handful of earth and cast it on his
+collar, and said: “O earth! be thou my grave; and O vest! tee thou my
+winding-sheet!” Then he took the middle road and went along it, day after day,
+with many a silent prayer, till he saw trees rise from the weary waste of sand.
+They grew in a garden, and he went up to the gate and found it a slab of
+beautifully worked marble, and that near it there lay sleeping, with his head
+on a stone, a negro whose face was so black that it made darkness round him.
+His upper lip, arched like an eyebrow, curved upwards to his nostrils and his
+lower hung down like a camel’s. Four millstones formed his shield, and on a
+box-tree close by hung his giant sword. His loin-cloth was fashioned of twelve
+skins of beasts, and was bound round his waist by a chain of which each link
+was as big as an elephant’s thigh.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince approached and tied up his horse near the negro’s head. Then he let
+fall the Bismillah from his lips, entered the garden and walked through it till
+he came to the private part, delighting in the great trees, the lovely verdure,
+and the flowery borders. In the inner garden there were very many deer. These
+signed to him with eye and foot to go back, for that this was enchanted ground;
+but he did not understand them, and thought their pretty gestures were a
+welcome. After a while he reached a palace which had a porch more splendid than
+Caesar’s, and was built of gold and silver bricks. In its midst was a high
+seat, overlaid with fine carpets, and into it opened eight doors, each having
+opposite to it a marble basin.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Banishing care, Prince Almas walked on through the garden, when suddenly a
+window opened and a girl, who was lovely enough to make the moon writhe with
+jealousy, put out her head. She lost her heart to the good looks of the prince,
+and sent her nurse to fetch him so that she might learn where he came from and
+how he had got into her private garden where even lions and wolves did not
+venture. The nurse went, and was struck with amazement at the sun-like radiance
+of his face; she salaamed and said: “O youth! welcome! the lady of the garden
+calls you; come!” He went with her and into a palace which was like a house in
+Paradise, and saw seated on the royal carpets of the throne a girl whose
+brilliance shamed the shining sun. He salaamed; she rose, took him by the hand
+and placed him near her. “O young man! who are you? Where do you come from? How
+did you get into this garden?” He told her his story from beginning to end, and
+Lady Latifa<a href="#linknote-9" name="linknoteref-9"><sup>[9]</sup></a>
+replied: “This is folly! It will make you a vagabond of the earth, and lead you
+to destruction. Come, cease such talk! No one can go to the Caucasus. Stay with
+me and be thankful, for here is a throne which you can share with me, and in my
+society you can enjoy my wealth. I will do whatever you wish; I will bring here
+King Qulmus and his daughter, and you can deal with them as you will.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O Lady Latifa,” he said, “I have made a compact with heaven not to sit down
+off my feet till I have been to Waq of Qaf and have cleared up this matter, and
+have taken Mihrafruz from her father, as brave men take, and have put her in
+prison. When I have done all this I will come back to you in state and with a
+great following, and I will marry you according to the law.” Lady Latifa argued
+and urged her wishes, but in vain; the prince was not to be moved. Then she
+called to the cupbearers for new wine, for she thought that when his head was
+hot with it he might consent to stay. The pure, clear wine was brought; she
+filled a cup and gave to him. He said: “O most enchanting sweetheart! it is the
+rule for the host to drink first and then the guest.” So to make him lose his
+head, she drained the cup; then filled it again and gave him. He drank it off,
+and she took a lute from one of the singers and played upon it with skill which
+witched away the sense of all who heard. But it was all in vain; three days
+passed in such festivities, and on the fourth the prince said: “O joy of my
+eyes! I beg now that you will bid me farewell, for my way is long and the fire
+of your love darts flame into the harvest of my heart. By heaven’s grace I may
+accomplish my purpose, and, if so, I will come back to you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now she saw that she could not in any way change his resolve, she told her
+nurse to bring a certain casket which contained, she said, something
+exhilarating which would help the prince on his journey. The box was brought,
+and she divided off a portion of what was within and gave it to the prince to
+eat. Then, and while he was all unaware, she put forth her hand to a stick
+fashioned like a snake; she said some words over it and struck him so sharply
+on the shoulder that he cried out; then he made a pirouette and found that he
+was a deer.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When he knew what had been done to him he thought, “All the threads of
+affliction are gathered together; I have lost my last chance!” He tried to
+escape, but the magician sent for her goldsmith, who, coming, overlaid the
+deer-horns with gold and jewels. The kerchief which that day she had had in her
+hand was then tied round its neck, and this freed it from her attentions.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince-deer now bounded into the garden and at once sought some way of
+escape. It found none, and it joined the other deer, which soon made it their
+leader. Now, although the prince had been transformed into the form of a deer,
+he kept his man’s heart and mind. He said to himself, “Thank heaven that the
+Lady Latifa has changed me into this shape, for at least deer are beautiful.”
+He remained for some time living as a deer amongst the rest, but at length
+resolved that an end to such a life must be put ill some way. He looked again
+for some place by which he could get out of the magic garden. Following round
+the wall he reached a lower part; he remembered the Divine Names and flung
+himself over, saying, “Whatever happens is by the will of God.” When he looked
+about he found that he was in the very same place he had jumped from; there was
+the palace, there the garden and the deer! Eight times he leaped over the wall
+and eight times found himself where he had started from; but after the ninth
+leap there was a change, there was a palace and there was a garden, but the
+deer were gone.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Presently a girl of such moon-like beauty opened a window that the prince lost
+to her a hundred hearts. She was delighted with the beautiful deer, and cried
+to her nurse: “Catch it! if you will I will give you this necklace, every pearl
+of which is worth a kingdom.” The nurse coveted the pearls, but as she was
+three hundred years old she did not know how she could catch a deer. However,
+she went down into the garden and held out some grass, but when she went near
+the creature ran away. The girl watched with great excitement from the palace
+window, and called: “O nurse, if you don’t catch it, I will kill you!” “I am
+killing myself,” shouted back the old woman. The girl saw that nurse tottering
+along and went down to help, marching with the gait of a prancing peacock. When
+she saw the gilded horns and the kerchief she said: “It must be accustomed to
+the hand, and be some royal pet!” The prince had it in mind that this might be
+another magician who could give him some other shape, but still it seemed best
+to allow himself to be caught. So he played about the girl and let her catch
+him by the neck. A leash was brought, fruits were given, and it was caressed
+with delight. It was taken to the palace and tied at the foot of the Lady
+Jamila’s raised seat, but she ordered a longer cord to be brought so that it
+might be able to jump up beside her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the nurse went to fix the cord she saw tears falling from its eyes, and
+that it was dejected and sorrowful “O Lady Jamila! this is a wonderful deer, it
+is crying; I never saw a deer cry before.” Jamila darted down like a flash of
+lightning, and saw that it was so. It rubbed its head on her feet and then
+shook it so sadly that the girl cried for sympathy. She patted it and said:
+“Why are you sad, my heart? Why do you cry, my soul? Is it because I have
+caught you? I love you better than my own life.” But, spite of her comforting,
+it cried the more. Then Jamila said: “Unless I am mistaken, this is the work of
+my wicked sister Latifa, who by magic art turns servants of God into beasts of
+the field.” At these words the deer uttered sounds, and laid its head on her
+feet. Then Jamila was sure it was a man, and said: “Be comforted, I will
+restore you to your own shape.” She bathed herself and ordered the deer to be
+bathed, put on clean raiment, called for a box which stood in an alcove, opened
+it and gave a portion of what was in it to the deer to eat. Then she slipped
+her hand under her carpet and produced a stick to which she said something. She
+struck the deer hard, it pirouetted and became Prince Almas.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The broidered kerchief and the jewels lay upon the ground. The prince
+prostrated himself in thanks to heaven and Jamila, and said: “O delicious
+person! O Chinese Venus! how shall I excuse myself for giving you so much
+trouble? With what words can I thank you?” Then she called for a clothes-wallet
+and chose out a royal dress of honour. Her attendants dressed him in it, and
+brought him again before the tender-hearted lady. She turned to him a hundred
+hearts, took his hand and seated him beside her, and said: “O youth! tell me
+truly who you are and where you come from, and how you fell into the power of
+my sister.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Even when he was a deer the prince had much admired Jamila now he thought her a
+thousand times more lovely than before. He judged that in truth alone was
+safety, and so told her his whole story. Then she asked: “O Prince
+Almas-ruh-bakhsh, do you still wish so much to make this journey to Waq of Qaf?
+What hope is there in it? The road is dangerous even near here, and this is not
+yet the borderland of the Caucasus. Come, give it up! It is a great risk, and
+to go is not wise. It would be a pity for a man like you to fall into the hands
+of jins and demons. Stay with me, and I will do whatever you wish.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O most delicious person!” he answered, “you are very generous, and the choice
+of my life lies in truth in your hands; but I beg one favour of you. If you
+love me, so do I too love you. If you really love me, do not forbid me to make
+this journey, but help me as far as you can. Then it may be that I shall
+succeed, and if I return with my purpose fulfilled I will marry you according
+to the law, and take you to my own country, and we will spend the rest of our
+lives together in pleasure and good companionship. Help me, if you can, and
+give me your counsel.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O very stuff of my life,” replied Jamila “I will give you things that are not
+in kings’ treasuries, and which will be of the greatest use to you. First,
+there are the bow and arrows of his Reverence the Prophet Salih. Secondly,
+there is the Scorpion of Solomon (on whom be peace), which is a sword such as
+no king has; steel and stone are one to it; if you bring it down on a rock it
+will not be injured, and it will cleave whatever you strike. Thirdly, there is
+the dagger which the sage Timus himself made; this is most useful, and the man
+who wears it would not bend under seven camels’ loads. What you have to do
+first is to get to the home of the Simurgh,<a href="#linknote-10"
+name="linknoteref-10"><sup>[10]</sup></a> and to make friends with him. If he
+favours you, he will take you to Waq of Qaf; if not, you will never get there,
+for seven seas are on the way, and they are such seas that if all the kings of
+the earth, and all their wazirs, and all their wise men considered for a
+thousand years, they would not be able to cross them.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O most delicious person! where is the Simurgh’s home? How shall I get there?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O new fruit of life! you must just do what I tell you, and you must use your
+eyes and your brains, for if you don’t you will find yourself at the place of
+the negroes, who are a bloodthirsty set; and God forbid they should lay hands
+on your precious person.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then she took the bow and quiver of arrows, the sword, and the dagger out of a
+box, and the prince let fall a Bismillah, and girt them all on. Then Jamila of
+the houri-face, produced two saddle-bags of ruby-red silk, one filled with
+roasted fowl and little cakes, and the other with stones of price. Next she
+gave him a horse as swift as the breeze of the morning, and she said: “Accept
+all these things from me; ride till you come to a rising ground, at no great
+distance from here, where there is a spring. It is called the Place of Gifts,
+and you must stay there one night. There you will see many wild beasts—lions,
+tigers, leopards, apes, and so on. Before you get there you must capture some
+game. On the long road beyond there dwells a lion-king, alla if other beasts
+did not fear him they would ravage the whole country and let no one pass. The
+lion is a red transgressor, so when he comes rise and do him reverence; take a
+cloth and rub the dust and earth from his face, then set the game you have
+taken before him, well cleansed, and lay the hands of respect on your breast.
+When he wishes to eat, take your knife and cut pieces of the meat and set them
+before him with a bow. In this way you will enfold that lion-king in perfect
+friendship, and he will be most useful to you, and you will be safe from
+molestation by the negroes. When you go on from the Place of Gifts, be sure you
+do not take the right-hand road; take the left, for the other leads by the
+negro castle, which is known as the Place of Clashing Swords, and where there
+are forty negro captains each over three thousand or four thousand more. Their
+chief is Taramtaq.<a href="#linknote-11"
+name="linknoteref-11"><sup>[11]</sup></a> Further on than this is the home of
+the Simurgh.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Having stored these things in the prince’s memory, she said: “You will see
+everything happen just as I have said.” Then she escorted him a little way;
+they parted, and she went home to mourn his absence.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Prince Almas, relying on the Causer of Causes, rode on to the Place of Gifts
+and dismounted at the platform. Everything happened just as Jamila had
+foretold; when one or two watches of the night had passed, he saw that the open
+ground around him was full of such stately and splendid animals as he had never
+seen before. By-and-by, they made way for a wonderfully big lion, which was
+eighty yards from nose to tail-tip, and was a magnificent creature. The prince
+advanced and saluted it; it proudly drooped its head and forelocks and paced to
+the platform. Seventy or eighty others were with it, and now encircled it at a
+little distance. It laid its right paw over its left, and the prince took the
+kerchief Jamila had given him for the purpose, and rubbed the dust and earth
+from its face; then brought forward the game he had prepared, and crossing his
+hands respectfully on his breast stood waiting before it. When it wished for
+food he cut off pieces of the meat and put them in its mouth. The serving lions
+also came near and the prince would have stayed his hand, but the king-lion
+signed to him to feed them too. This he did, laying the meat on the platform.
+Then the king-lion beckoned the prince to come near and said: “Sleep at ease;
+my guards will watch.”. So, surrounded by the lion-guard, he slept till dawn,
+when the king lion said good-bye, and gave him a few of his own hairs and said:
+“When you are in any difficulty, burn one of these and I will be there.” Then
+it went off into the jungle.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Prince Almas immediately started; he rode till he came to the parting of the
+ways. He remembered quite well that the right-hand way was short and dangerous,
+but he bethought himself too that whatever was written on his forehead would
+happen, and took the forbidden road. By-and-by he saw a castle, and knew from
+what Jamila had told him that it was the Place of Clashing Swords. He would
+have liked to go back by the way ho had come, but courage forbade, and he said,
+“What has been preordained from eternity will happen to me,” and went on
+towards the castle. He was thinking of tying his horse to a tree which grew
+near the gate when a negro came out and spied him. “Ha!” said the wretch to
+himself, “this is good; Taram-taq has not eaten man-meat for a long time, and
+is craving for some. I will take this creature to him.” He took hold of the
+prince’s reins, and said: “Dismount, man-child! Come to my master. He has
+wanted to eat man-meat this long time back.” “What nonsense are you saying?”
+said the prince, and other such words. When the negro understood that he was
+being abused, he cried: “Come along! I will put you into such a state that the
+birds of the air will weep for you.” Then the prince drew the Scorpion of
+Solomon and struck him—struck him on the leathern belt and shore him through so
+that the sword came out on the other side. He stood upright for a little while,
+muttered some words, put out his hand to seize the prince, then fell in two and
+surrendered his life.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+There was water close at hand, and the prince made his ablution, and then said:
+“O my heart! a wonderful task lies upon you.” A second negro came out of the
+fort, and seeing what had been done, went back and told his chief. Others
+wished to be doubled, and went out, and of every one the Scorpion of Solomon
+made two. Then Taram-taq sent for a giant negro named Chil-maq, who in the day
+of battle was worth three hundred, and said to him: “I shall thank you to fetch
+me that man.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Chil-maq went out, tall as a tower, and bearing a shield of eight millstones,
+and as he walked he shouted: “Ho! blunder-head! by what right do you come to
+our country and kill our people? Come! make two of me.” As the prince was
+despicable in his eyes, he tossed aside his club and rushed to grip him with
+his hands. He caught him by the collar, tucked him under his arm and set off
+with him to Taram-taq. But the prince drew the dagger of Timus and thrust it
+upwards through the giant’s armpit, for its full length. This made Chil-maq
+drop him and try to pick up his club; but when he stooped the mighty sword
+shore him through at the waist.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When news of his champion’s death reached Taram-taq he put himself at the head
+of an army of his negroes and led them forth. Many fell before the magic sword,
+and the prince laboured on in spite of weakness and fatigue till he was almost
+worn out. In a moment of respite from attack he struck his fire-steel and
+burned a hair of the king-lion; and he had just succeeded in this when the
+negroes charged again and all but took him prisoner. Suddenly from behind the
+distant veil of the desert appeared an army of lions led by their king. “What
+brings these scourges of heaven here?” cried the negroes. They came roaring up,
+and put fresh life into the prince. He fought on, and when he struck on a belt
+the wearer fell in two, and when on a head he cleft to the waist. Then the ten
+thousand mighty lions joined the fray and tore in pieces man and horse.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Taram-taq was left alone; he would have retired into his fort, but the prince
+shouted: “Whither away, accursed one? Are you fleeing before me?” At these
+defiant words the chief shouted back, “Welcome, man! Come here and I will
+soften you to wax beneath my club.” Then he hurled his club at the prince’s
+head, but it fell harmless because the prince had quickly spurred his horse
+forward. The chief, believing he had hit him, was looking down for him, when
+all at once he came up behind and cleft him to the waist and sent him straight
+to hell.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The king-lion greatly praised the dashing courage of Prince Almas. They went
+together into the Castle of Clashing Swords and found it adorned and fitted in
+princely fashion. In it was a daughter of Taram taq, still a child She sent a
+message to Prince Almas saying, “O king of the world! choose this slave to be
+your handmaid. Keep her with you; where you go, there she will go!” He sent for
+her and she kissed his feet and received the Mussulman faith at his hands. He
+told her he was going a long journey on important business, and that when he
+came back he would take her and her possessions to his own country, but that
+for the present she must stay in the castle. Then he made over the fort and all
+that was in it to the care of the lion, saying: “Guard them, brother! let no
+one lay a hand on them.” He said goodbye, chose a fresh horse from the chief’s
+stable and once again took the road.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After travelling many stages and for many days, he reached a plain of
+marvellous beauty and refreshment. It was carpeted with flowers—roses, tulips,
+and clover; it had lovely lawns, and amongst them running water. This choicest
+place of earth filled him with wonder. There was a tree such as he had never
+seen before; its branches were alike, but it bore flowers and fruit of a
+thousand kinds. Near it a reservoir had been fashioned of four sorts of
+stone—touchstone, pure stone, marble, and loadstone. In and out of it flowed
+water like attar. The prince felt sure this must be the place of the Simurgh.”
+he dismounted, turned his horse loose to graze, ate some of the food Jamila had
+given him, drank of the stream and lay down to sleep.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He was still dozing when he was aroused by the neighing and pawing of his
+horse. When he could see clearly he made out a mountain-like dragon whose heavy
+breast crushed the stones beneath it into putty. He remembered the Thousand
+Names of God and took the bow of Salih from its case and three arrows from
+their quiver. He bound the dagger of Timus firmly to his waist and hung the
+scorpion of Solomon round his neck. Then he set an arrow on the string and
+released it with such force that it went in at the monster’s eye right up to
+the notch. The dragon writhed on itself, and belched forth an evil vapour, and
+beat the ground with its head till the earth quaked. Then the prince took a
+second arrow and shot into its throat. It drew in its breath and would have
+sucked the prince into its maw, but when he was within striking distance he
+drew his sword and, having committed himself to God, struck a mighty blow which
+cut the creature’s neck down to the gullet. The foul vapour of the beast and
+horror at its strangeness now overcame the prince, and he fainted. When he came
+to himself he found that he was drenched in the gore of the dead monster. He
+rose and thanked God for his deliverance.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The nest of the Simurgh was in the wonderful tree above him, and in it were
+young birds; the parents were away searching for food. They always told the
+children, before they left them, not to put their heads out of the nest; but,
+to-day, at the noise of the fight below, they looked down and so saw the whole
+affair. By the time the dragon had been killed they were very hungry and set up
+a clamour for food. The prince therefore cut up the dragon and fed them with
+it, bit by bit, till they had eaten the whole. He then washed himself and lay
+down to rest, and he was still asleep when the Simurgh came home. As a rule,
+the young birds raised a clamour of welcome when their parents came near, but
+on this day they were so full of dragon-meat that they had no choice, they had
+to go to sleep.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As they flew nearer, the old birds saw the prince lying under the tree and no
+sign of life in the nest. They thought that the misfortune which for so many
+earlier years had befallen them had again happened and that their nestlings had
+disappeared. They had never been able to find out the murderer, and now
+suspected the prince. “He has eaten our children and sleeps after it; he must
+die,” said the father-bird, and flew back to the hills and clawed up a huge
+stone which he meant to let fall on the prince’s head. But his mate said, “Let
+us look into the nest first for to kill an innocent person would condemn us at
+the Day of Resurrection.” They flew nearer, and presently the young birds woke
+and cried, “Mother, what have you brought for us?” and they told the whole
+story of the fight, and of how they were alive only by the favour of the young
+man under the tree, and of his cutting up the dragon and of their eating it.
+The mother-bird then remarked, “Truly, father! you were about to do a strange
+thing, and a terrible sin has been averted from you.” Then the Simurgh flew off
+to a distance with the great stone and dropped it. It sank down to the very
+middle of the earth.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Coming back, the Simurgh saw that a little sunshine fell upon the prince
+through the leaves, and it spread its wings and shaded him till he woke. When
+he got up he salaamed to it, who returned his greeting with joy and gratitude,
+and caressed him and said: “O youth, tell me true! who are you, and where are
+you going? And how did you cross that pitiless desert where never yet foot of
+man had trod?” The prince told his story from beginning to end, and finished by
+saying: “Now it is my heart’s wish that you should help me to get to Waq of the
+Caucasus. Perhaps, by your favour, I shall accomplish my task and avenge my
+brothers.” In reply the Simurgh.” first blessed the deliverer of his children,
+and then went on: “What you have done no child of man has ever done before; you
+assuredly have a claim on all my help, for every year up till now that dragon
+has come here and has destroyed my nestlings, and I have never been able to
+find who was the murderer and to avenge myself. By God’s grace you have removed
+my children’s powerful foe. I regard you as a child of my own. Stay with me; I
+will give you everything you desire, and I will establish a city here for you,
+and will furnish it with every requisite; I will give you the land of the
+Caucasus, and will make its princes subject to you. Give up the journey to Waq,
+it is full of risk, and the jins there will certainly kill you.” But nothing
+could move the prince, and seeing this the bird went on: “Well, so be it! When
+you wish to set forth you must go into the plain and take seven head of deer,
+and must make water-tight bags of their hides and keep their flesh in seven
+portions. Seven seas lie on our way—I will carry you over them; but if I have
+not food and drink we shall fall into the sea and be drowned. When I ask for it
+you must put food and water into my mouth. So we shall make the journey
+safely.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince did all as he was told, then they took flight; they crossed the
+seven seas, and at each one the prince fed the Simurgh When they alighted on
+the shore of the last sea, it said: “O my son! there lies your road; follow it
+to the city. Take thee three feathers of mine, and, if you are in a difficulty,
+burn one and I will be with you in the twinkling of an eye.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince walked on in solitude till he reached the city. He went in and
+wandered about through all quarters, and through bazaars and lanes and squares,
+in the least knowing from whom he could ask information about the riddle of
+Mihr-afruz. He spent seven days thinking it over in silence. From the first day
+of his coming he had made friends with a young cloth-merchant, and a great
+liking had sprung up between them. One day he said abruptly to his companion:
+“O dear friend! I wish you would tell me what the rose did to the cypress, and
+what the sense of the riddle is.” The merchant started, and exclaimed: “If
+there were not brotherly affection between us, I would cut off your head for
+asking me this!” “If you meant to kill me,” retorted the prince, “you would
+still have first to tell me what I want to know.” When the merchant saw that
+the prince was in deadly earnest, he said: “If you wish to hear the truth of
+the matter you must wait upon our king. There is no other way; no one else will
+tell you. I have a well-wisher at the Court, named Farrukh-fal,<a
+href="#linknote-12" name="linknoteref-12"><sup>[12]</sup></a> and will
+introduce you to him.” “That would be excellent,” cried the prince. A meeting
+was arranged between Farrukhfal and Almas, and then the amir took him to the
+king’s presence and introduced him as a stranger and traveller who had come
+from afar to sit in the shadow of King Sinaubar.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the Simurgh had given the prince a diamond weighing thirty misqals, and he
+ordered this to the king, who at once recognised its value, and asked where it
+had been obtained. “I, your slave, once had riches and state and power; there
+are many such stones in my country. On my way here I was plundered at the
+Castle of Clashing Swords, and I saved this one thing only, hidden in my
+bathing-cloth.” In return for the diamond, King Sinaubar showered gifts of much
+greater value, for he remembered that it was the last possession of the prince.
+He showed the utmost kindness and hospitality, and gave his wazir orders to
+instal the prince in the royal guest-house. He took much pleasure in his
+visitor’s society; they were together every day and spent the time most
+pleasantly. Several times the king said: “Ask me for something, that I may give
+it you.“One day he so pressed to know what would pleasure the prince, that the
+latter said: “I have only one wish, and that I will name to you in private.”
+The king at once commanded every one to withdraw, and then Prince Almas said:
+“The desire of my life is to know what the rose did to the cypress, and what
+meaning there is in the words.” The king was astounded. “In God’s name! if
+anyone else had said that to me I should have cut off his head instantly.” The
+prince heard this in silence, and presently so beguiled the king with pleasant
+talk that to kill him was impossible.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Time flew by, the king again and again begged the prince to ask some gift of
+him, and always received this same reply: “I wish for your Majesty’s welfare,
+what more can I desire?” One night there was a banquet, and cupbearers carried
+round gold and silver cups of sparkling wine, and singers with sweetest voices
+contended for the prize. The prince drank from the king’s own cup, and when his
+head was hot with wine he took a lute from one of the musicians and placed
+himself on the carpet border and sang and sang till he witched away the sense
+of all who listened. Applause and compliments rang from every side. The king
+filled his cup and called the prince and gave it him and said: “Name your wish!
+it is yours.” The prince drained off the wine and answered: “O king of the
+world! learn and know that I have only one aim in life, and this is to know
+what the rose did to the cypress.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Never yet,” replied the king, “has any man come out from that question alive.
+If this is your only wish, so be it; I will tell you. But I will do this on one
+condition only, namely, that when you have heard you will submit yourself to
+death.” To this the prince agreed, and said: “I set my foot firmly on this
+compact.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The king then gave an order to an attendant; a costly carpet overlaid with
+European velvet was placed near him, and a dog was led in by a golden and
+jewelled chain and set upon the splendid stuffs. A band of fair girls came in
+and stood round it in waiting.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then, with ill words, twelve negroes dragged in a lovely woman, fettered on
+hands and feet and meanly dressed, and they set her down on the bare floor. She
+was extraordinarily beautiful, and shamed the glorious sun. The king ordered a
+hundred stripes to be laid on her tender body; she sighed a long sigh. Food was
+called for and table-cloths were spread. Delicate meats were set before the
+dog, and water given it in a royal cup of Chinese crystal. When it had eaten
+its fill, its leavings were placed before the lovely woman and she was made to
+eat of them. She wept and her tears were pearls; she smiled and her lips shed
+roses. Pearls and flowers were gathered up and taken to the treasury.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now,” said the king, “you have seen these things and your purpose is
+fulfilled.” “Truly,” said the prince, “I have seen things which I have not
+understood; what do they mean, and what is the story of them? Tell me and kill
+me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then said the king: “The woman you see there in chains is my wife; she is
+called Gul, the Rose, and I am Sinaubar, the Cypress. One day I was hunting and
+became very thirsty. After great search I discovered a well in a place so
+secret that neither bird nor beast nor man could find it without labour. I was
+alone, I took my turban for a rope and my cap for a bucket. There was a good
+deal of water, but when I let down my rope, something caught it, and I could
+not in any way draw it back. I shouted down into the well: ‘O! servant of God!
+whoever you are, why do you deal unfairly with me? I am dying of thirst, let
+go! in God’s name.’ A cry came up in answer, ‘O servant of God! we have been in
+the well a long time; in God’s name get us out!’ After trying a thousand
+schemes, I drew up two blind women. They said they were peris, and that their
+king had blinded them in his anger and had left them in the well alone.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“‘Now,’ they said, ‘if you will get us the cure for our blindness we will
+devote ourselves to your service, and will do whatever you wish.’
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“‘What is the cure for your blindness?’
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“‘Not far from this place,’ they said, ‘a cow comes up from the great sea to
+graze; a little of her dung would cure us. We should be eternally your debtors.
+Do not let the cow see you, or she will assuredly kill you.’
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“With renewed strength and spirit I went to the shore. There I watched the cow
+come up from the sea, graze, and go back. Then I came out of my hiding, took a
+little of her dung and conveyed it to the peris. They rubbed it on their eyes,
+and by the Divine might saw again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“They thanked heaven and me, and then considered what they could do to show
+their gratitude to me. ‘Our peri-king,’ they said, ‘has a daughter whom he
+keeps under his own eye and thinks the most lovely girl on earth. In good
+sooth, she has not her equal! Now we will get you into her house and you must
+win her heart, and if she has an inclination for another, you must drive it out
+and win her for yourself. Her mother loves her so dearly that she has no ease
+but in her presence, and she will give her to no one in marriage. Teach her to
+love you so that she cannot exist without you. But if the matter becomes known
+to her mother she will have you burned in the fire. Then you must beg, as a
+last favour, that your body may be anointed with oil so that you may burn the
+more quickly and be spared torture. If the peri-king allows this favour, we two
+will manage to be your anointers, and we will put an oil on you such that if
+you were a thousand years in the fire not a trace of burning would remain.’
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“In the end the two peris took me to the girl’s house. I saw her sleeping
+daintily. She was most lovely, and I was so amazed at the perfection of her
+beauty that I stood with senses lost, and did not know if she were real or a
+dream. When at last I saw that she was a real girl, I returned thanks that I,
+the runner, had come to my goal, and that I, the seeker, had found my treasure.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“When the peri opened her eyes she asked in affright: ‘Who are you? Have you
+come to steal? How did you get here? Be quick! save yourself from this
+whirlpool of destruction, for the demons and peris. who guard me will wake and
+seize you.’
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But love’s arrow had struck me deep, and the girl, too, looked kindly on me. I
+could not go away. For some months I remained hidden in her house. “We did not
+dare to let her mother know of our love. Sometimes the girl was very sad and
+fearful lest her mother should come to know. One day her father said to her:
+‘Sweetheart, for some time I have noticed that your beauty is not what it was.
+How is this? Has sickness touched you? Tell me that I may seek a cure.’ Alas!
+there was now no way of concealing the mingled delight and anguish of our love;
+from secret it became known. I was put in prison and the world grew dark to my
+rose, bereft of her lover.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The peri-king ordered me to be burnt, and said: ‘Why have you, a man, done
+this perfidious thing in my house?’ His demons and peris. collected amber-wood
+and made a pile, and would have set me on it, when I remembered the word of
+life which the two peris. I had rescued had breathed into my ear, and I asked
+that my body might be rubbed with oil to release me the sooner from torture.
+This was allowed, and those two contrived to be the anointers. I was put into
+the fire and it was kept up for seven days and nights. By the will of the Great
+King it left no trace upon me. At the end of a week the pert-king ordered the
+ashes to be cast upon the dust-heap, and I was found alive and unharmed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Peris who had seen Gul consumed by her love for me now interceded with the
+king, and said: ‘It is clear that your daughter’s fortunes are bound up with
+his, for the fire has not hurt him. It is best to give him the girl, for they
+love one another. He is King of Waq of Qaf, and you will find none better.’
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“To this the king agreed, and made formal marriage between Gul and me. You now
+know the price I paid for this faithless creature. O prince! remember our
+compact.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I remember,” said the prince; “but tell me what brought Queen Gul to her
+present pass?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“One night,” continued King Sinaubar, “I was aroused by feeling Gul’s hands and
+feet, deadly cold, against my body. I asked her where she had been to get so
+cold, and she said she had had to go out. Next morning, when I went to my
+stable I saw that two of my horses, Windfoot and Tiger, were thin and worn out.
+I reprimanded the groom and beat him. He asked where his fault lay, and said
+that every night my wife took one or other of these horses and rode away, and
+came back only just before dawn. A flame kindled in my heart, and I asked
+myself where she could go and what she could do. I told the groom to be silent,
+and when next Gul took a horse from the stable to saddle another quickly and
+bring it to me. That day I did not hunt, but stayed at home to follow the
+matter up. I lay down as usual at night and pretended to fall asleep. When I
+seemed safely off Gul got up and went to the stable as her custom was. That
+night it was Tiger’s turn. She rode off on him, and I took Windfoot and
+followed. With me went that dog you see, a faithful friend who never left me.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“When I came to the foot of those hills which lie outside the city I saw Gul
+dismount and go towards a house which some negroes have built there. Over
+against the door was a high seat, and on it lay a giant negro, before whom she
+salaamed. He got up and beat her till she was marked with weals, but she
+uttered no complaint. I was dumfounded, for once when I had struck her with a
+rose stalk she had complained and fretted for three days! Then the negro said
+to her: ‘How now, ugly one and shaven head! Why are you so late, and why are
+you not wearing wedding garments?’ She answered him: ‘That person did not go to
+sleep quickly, and he stayed at home all day, so that I was not able to adorn
+myself. I came as soon as I could.’ In a little while he called her to sit
+beside him; but this was more than I could bear. I lost control of myself and
+rushed upon him. He clutched my collar and we grappled in a death struggle.
+Suddenly she came behind me, caught my feet and threw me. While he held me on
+the ground, she drew out my own knife and gave it to him. I should have been
+killed but for that faithful dog which seized his throat and pulled him down
+and pinned him to the ground. Then I got up and despatched the wretch. There
+were four other negroes at the place; three I killed and the fourth got away,
+and has taken refuge beneath the throne of Mihr-afruz, daughter of King Quimus.
+I took Gul back to my palace, and from that time till now I have treated her as
+a dog is treated, and I have cared for my dog as though it were my wife. Now
+you know what the rose did to the cypress; and now you must keep compact with
+me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I shall keep my word,” said the prince; “but may a little water be taken to
+the roof so that I may make my last ablution?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+To this request the king consented. The prince mounted to the roof, and,
+getting into a corner, struck his fire-steel and burned one of the Sirurgh’s
+feathers in the flame. Straightway it appeared, and by the majesty of its
+presence made the city quake. It took the prince on its back and soared away to
+the zenith.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After a time King Sinaubar said: “That young man is a long time on the roof; go
+and bring him here.” But there was no sign of the prince upon the roof; only,
+far away in the sky, the Simurgh was seen carrying him off. When the king heard
+of his escape he thanked heaven that his hands were clean of this blood.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Up and up flew the Simurgh, till earth looked like an egg resting on an ocean.
+At length it dropped straight down to its own place, where the kind prince was
+welcomed by the young birds and most hospitably entertained. He told the whole
+story of the rose and the cypress, and then, laden with gifts which the Simurgh
+had gathered from cities far and near, he set his face for the Castle of
+Clashing Swords. The king-lion came out to meet him; he took the negro chief’s
+daughter—-whose name was also Gul—in lawful marriage, and then marched with her
+and her possessions and her attendants to the Place of Gifts. Here they halted
+for a night, and at dawn said good-bye to the king-lion and set out for
+Jamila’s country.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the Lady Jamila heard that Prince Almas was near, she went out, with many
+a fair handmaid, to give him loving reception. Their meeting was joyful, and
+they went together to the garden-palace. Jamila summoned all her notables, and
+in their presence her marriage with the prince was solemnised. A few days later
+she entrusted her affairs to her wazir, and made preparation to go with the
+prince to his own country. Before she started she restored all the men whom her
+sister, Latifa, had bewitched, to their own forms, and received their
+blessings, and set them forward to their homes. The wicked Latifa herself she
+left quite alone in her garden-house. When all was ready they set out with all
+her servants and slaves, all her treasure and goods, and journeyed at ease to
+the city of King Quimus.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When King Quimus heard of the approach of such a great company, he sent out his
+wazir to give the prince honourable meeting, and to ask what had procured him
+the favour of the visit. The prince sent back word that he had no thought of
+war, but he wrote: “Learn and know, King Quimus, that I am here to end the
+crimes of your insolent daughter who has tyrannously done to death many kings
+and kings sons, and has hung their heads on your citadel. I am here to give her
+the answer to her riddle.” Later on he entered the city, beat boldly on the
+drums, and was conducted to the presence.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The king entreated him to have nothing to do with the riddle, for that no man
+had come out of it alive. “O king!” replied the prince, “it is to answer it
+that I am here; I will not withdraw.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Mihr-afruz was told that one man more had staked his head on her question, and
+that this was one who said he knew the answer. At the request of the prince,
+all the officers and notables of the land were summoned to hear his reply to
+the princess. All assembled, and the king and his queen Gul-rakh, and the girl
+and the prince were there.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince addressed Mihr-afruz: “What is the question you ask?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What did the rose do to the cypress?” she rejoined.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince smiled, and turned and addressed the assembly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You who are experienced men and versed in affairs, did you ever know or hear
+and see anything of this matter?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No!” they answered, “no one has ever known or heard or seen aught about it; it
+is an empty fancy.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“From whom, then, did the princess hear of it? This empty fancy it is that has
+done many a servant of God to death!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All saw the good sense of his words and showed their approval. Then he turned
+to the princess: “Tell us the truth, princess; who told you of this thing? I
+know it hair by hair, and in and out; but if I tell you what I know, who is
+there that can say I speak the truth? You must produce the person who can
+confirm my words.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Her heart sank, for she feared that her long-kept secret was now to be noised
+abroad. But she said merely: “Explain yourself.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I shall explain myself fully when you bring here the negro whom you hide
+beneath your throne.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Here the king shouted in wonderment: “Explain yourself, young man! What negro
+does my daughter hide beneath her throne?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That,” said the prince, “you will see if you order to be brought here the
+negro who will be found beneath the throne of the princess.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Messengers were forthwith despatched to the garden house, and after awhile they
+returned bringing a negro whom they had discovered in a secret chamber
+underneath the throne of Mihr-afruz, dressed in a dress of honour, and
+surrounded with luxury. The king was overwhelmed with astonishment, but the
+girl had taken heart again. She had had time to think that perhaps the prince
+had heard of the presence of the negro, and knew no more. So she said
+haughtily: “Prince! you have not answered my riddle.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O most amazingly impudent person,” cried he, “do you not yet repent?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then he turned to the people, and told them the whole story of the rose and the
+cypress, of King Sinaubar and Queen Gul. When he came to the killing of the
+negroes, he said to the one who stood before them: “You, too, were present.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That is so; all happened as you have told it!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+There was great rejoicing in the court and all through the country over the
+solving of the riddle, and because now no more kings and princes would be
+killed. King Quimus made over his daughter to Prince Almas, but the latter
+refused to marry her, and took her as his captive. He then asked that the heads
+should be removed from the battlements and given decent burial. This was done.
+He received from the king everything that belonged to Mihr-afruz; her treasure
+of gold and silver; her costly stuffs and carpets; her household plenishing;
+her horses and camels; her servants and slaves.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then he returned to his camp and sent for Dil-aram, who came bringing her goods
+and chattels, her gold and her jewels. When all was ready, Prince Almas set out
+for home, taking with him Jamila, and Dil-aram and Gul, daughter of Taram-taq,
+and the wicked Mihr-afruz, and all the belongings of the four, packed on horses
+and camels, and in carts without number.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As he approached the borders of his father’s country word of his coming went
+before him, and all the city came forth to give him welcome. King
+Saman-lal-posh—Jessamine, wearer of rubies—had so bewept the loss of his sons
+that he was now blind. When the prince had kissed his feet and received his
+blessing, he took from a casket a little collyrium of Solomon, which the
+Simurgh had given him, and which reveals the hidden things of earth, and rubbed
+it on his father’s eyes. Light came, and the king saw his son.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Mihr-afruz was brought before the king, and the prince said: “This is the
+murderer of your sons; do with her as you will.” The king fancied that the
+prince might care for the girl’s beauty, and replied: “You have humbled her; do
+with her as you will.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Upon this the prince sent for four swift and strong horses, and had the negro
+bound to each one of them; then each was driven to one of the four quarters,
+and he tore in pieces like muslin.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This frightened Mihr-afruz horribly, for she thought the same thing might be
+done to herself. She cried out to the prince: “O Prince Almas! what is hardest
+to get is most valued. Up till now I have been subject to no man, and no man
+had had my love. The many kings and kings sons who have died at my hands have
+died because it was their fate to die like this. In this matter I have not
+sinned. That was their fate from eternity; and from the beginning it was
+predestined that my fate should be bound up with yours.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince gave ear to the argument from pre-ordainment, and as she was a very
+lovely maiden he took her too in lawful marriage. She and Jamila, set up house
+together, and Dil-aram and Gul set up theirs; and the prince passed the rest of
+his life with the four in perfect happiness, and in pleasant and sociable
+entertainment.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now has been told what the rose did to the cypress.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Finished, finished, finished!
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="link2H_FOOT"></a>
+Footnotes:</h2>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-1"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+1 (<a href="#linknoteref-1">return</a>)<br/>
+[Translated from two Persian MSS. in the possession of the British Museum and
+the India Office, and adapted, with some reservations, by Annette S.
+Beveridge.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-2"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+2 (<a href="#linknoteref-2">return</a>)<br/>
+[Jessamine, ruby-decked.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-3"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+3 (<a href="#linknoteref-3">return</a>)<br/>
+[Life-giving diamond.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-4"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+4 (<a href="#linknoteref-4">return</a>)<br/>
+[World-gripper.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-5"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+5 (<a href="#linknoteref-5">return</a>)<br/>
+[Love-enkindler.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-6"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+6 (<a href="#linknoteref-6">return</a>)<br/>
+[Rose-cheek.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-7"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+7 (<a href="#linknoteref-7">return</a>)<br/>
+[Heartsease.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-8"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+8 (<a href="#linknoteref-8">return</a>)<br/>
+[Elias.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-9"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+9 (<a href="#linknoteref-9">return</a>)<br/>
+[Pleasure.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-10"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+10 (<a href="#linknoteref-10">return</a>)<br/>
+[Thirty-birds.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-11"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+11 (<a href="#linknoteref-11">return</a>)<br/>
+[Pomp and Pride.]
+</p>
+
+<p>
+<a name="linknote-12"></a>
+</p>
+
+<p class="footnote">
+12 (<a href="#linknoteref-12">return</a>)<br/>
+[Of happy omen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap02"></a>
+Ball-carrier and the Bad One</h2>
+
+<p>
+Far, far in the forest there were two little huts, and in each of them lived a
+man who was a famous hunter, his wife, and three or four children. Now the
+children were forbidden to play more than a short distance from the door, as it
+was known that, away on the other side of the wood near the great river, there
+dwelt a witch who had a magic ball that she used as a means of stealing
+children.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Her plan was a very simple one, and had never yet failed. When she wanted a
+child she just flung her ball in the direction of the child’s home, and however
+far off it might be, the ball was sure to reach it. Then, as soon as the child
+saw it, the ball would begin rolling slowly back to the witch, just keeping a
+little ahead of the child, so that he always thought that he could catch it the
+next minute. But he never did, and, what was more, his parents never saw him
+again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Of course you must not suppose that all the fathers and mothers who had lost
+children made no attempts to find them, but the forest was so large, and the
+witch was so cunning in knowing exactly where they were going to search, that
+it was very easy for her to keep out of the way. Besides, there was always the
+chance that the children might have been eaten by wolves, of which large herds
+roamed about in winter.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day the old witch happened to want a little boy, so she threw her ball in
+the direction of the hunters’ huts. A child was standing outside, shooting at a
+mark with his bow and arrows, but the moment he saw the ball, which was made of
+glass whose blues and greens and whites, all frosted over, kept changing one
+into the other, he flung down his bow, and stooped to pick the ball up. But as
+he did so it began to roll very gently downhill. The boy could not let it roll
+away, when it was so close to him, so he gave chase. The ball seemed always
+within his grasp, yet he could never catch it; it went quicker and quicker, and
+the boy grew more and more excited. That time he almost touched it—no, he
+missed it by a hair’s breadth! Now, surely, if he gave a spring he could get in
+front of it! He sprang forward, tripped and fell, and found himself in the
+witch’s house!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Welcome! welcome! grandson!” said she; “get up and rest yourself, for you have
+had a long walk, and I am sure you must be tired!” So the boy sat down, and ate
+some food which she gave him in a bowl. It was quite different from anything he
+had tasted before, and he thought it was delicious. When he had eaten up every
+bit, the witch asked him if he had ever fasted.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No,” replied the boy, “at least I have been obliged to sometimes, but never if
+there was any food to be had.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You will have to fast if you want the spirits to make you strong and wise, and
+the sooner you begin the better.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Very well,” said the boy, “what do I do first?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Lie down on those buffalo skins by the door of the hut,” answered she; and the
+boy lay down, and the squirrels and little bears and the birds came and talked
+to him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At the end of ten days the old woman came to him with a bowl of the same food
+that he had eaten before.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Get up, my grandson, you have fasted long enough. Have the good spirits
+visited you, and granted you the strength and wisdom that you desire?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Some of them have come, and have given me a portion of both,” answered the
+boy, “but many have stayed away from me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Then,” said she, “you must fast ten days more.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the boy lay down again on the buffalo skins, and fasted for ten days, and at
+the end of that time he turned his face to the wall, and fasted for twenty days
+longer. At length the witch called to him, and said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Come and eat something, my grandson.” At the sound of her voice the boy got up
+and ate the food she gave him. When he had finished every scrap she spoke as
+before: “Tell me, my grandson, have not the good spirits visited you all these
+many days that you have fasted?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Not all, grandmother,” answered he; “there are still some who keep away from
+me and say that I have not fasted long enough.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Then you must fast again,” replied the old woman, “and go on fasting till you
+receive the gifts of all the good spirits. Not one must be missing.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The boy said nothing, but lay down for the third time on the buffalo skins, and
+fasted for twenty days more. And at the end of that time the witch thought he
+was dead, his face was so white and his body so still. But when she had fed him
+out of the bowl he grew stronger, and soon was able to sit up.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You have fasted a long time,” said she, “longer than anyone ever fasted
+before. Surely the good spirits must be satisfied now?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, grandmother,” answered the boy, “they have all come, and have given me
+their gifts.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This pleased the old woman so much that she brought him another basin of food,
+and while he was eating it she talked to him, and this is what she said: “Far
+away, on the other side of the great river, is the home of the Bad One. In his
+house is much gold, and what is more precious even than the gold, a little
+bridge, which lengthens out when the Bad One waves his hand, so that there is
+no river or sea that he cannot cross. Now I want that bridge and some of the
+gold for myself, and that is the reason that I have stolen so many boys by
+means of my ball. I have tried to teach them how to gain the gifts of the good
+spirits, but none of them would fast long enough, and at last I had to send
+them away to perform simple, easy little tasks. But you have been strong and
+faithful, and you can do this thing if you listen to what I tell you! When you
+reach the river tie this ball to your foot, and it will take you across—you
+cannot manage it in any other way. But do not be afraid; trust to the ball, and
+you will be quite safe!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The boy took the ball and put it in a bag. Then he made himself a club and a
+bow, and some arrows which would fly further than anyone else’s arrows, because
+of the strength the good spirits had given him. They had also bestowed on him
+the power of changing his shape, and had increased the quickness of his eyes
+and ears so that nothing escaped him. And in some way or other they made him
+understand that if he needed more help they would give it to him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When all these things were ready the boy bade farewell to the witch and set
+out. He walked through the forest for several days without seeing anyone but
+his friends the squirrels and the bears and the birds, but though he stopped
+and spoke to them all, he was careful not to let them know where he was going.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last, after many days, he came to the river, and beyond it he noticed a
+small hut standing on a hill which he guessed to be the home of the Bad One.
+But the stream flowed so quickly that he could not see how he was ever to cross
+it, and in order to test how swift the current really was, he broke a branch
+from a tree and threw it in. It seemed hardly to touch the water before it was
+carried away, and even his magic sight could not follow it. He could not help
+feeling frightened, but he hated giving up anything that he had once
+undertaken, and, fastening the ball on his right foot, he ventured on the
+river. To his surprise he was able to stand up; then a panic seized him, and he
+scrambled up the bank again. In a minute or two he plucked up courage to go a
+little further into the river, but again its width frightened him, and a second
+time he turned back. However, he felt rather ashamed of his cowardice, as it
+was quite clear that his ball could support him, and on his third trial he got
+safely to the other side.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Once there he replaced the ball in the bag, and looked carefully round him. The
+door of the Bad One’s hut was open, and he saw that the ceiling was supported
+by great wooden beams, from which hung the bags of gold and the little bridge.
+He saw, too, the Bad One sitting in the midst of his treasures eating his
+dinner, and drinking something out of a horn. It was plain to the boy that he
+must invent some plan of getting the Bad One out of the way, or else he would
+never be able to steal the gold or the bridge.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+What should he do? Give horrible shrieks as if he were in pain? But the Bad One
+would not care whether he were murdered or not! Call him by his name? But the
+Bad One was very cunning, and would suspect some trick. He must try something
+better than that! Then suddenly an idea came to him, and he gave a little jump
+of joy. “Oh, how stupid of me not to think of that before!” said he, and he
+wished with all his might that the Bad One should become very hungry—so hungry
+that he could not wait a moment for fresh food to be brought to him. And sure
+enough at that instant the Bad One called out to his servant, “You did not
+bring food that would satisfy a sparrow Fetch some more at once, for I am
+perfectly starving.” Then, without giving the woman time to go to the larder,
+he got up from his chair, and rolled, staggering from hunger, towards the
+kitchen.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Directly the door had closed on the Bad One the boy ran in, pulled down a bag
+of gold from the beam, and tucked it under his left arm. Next he unhooked the
+little bridge and put it under his right. He did not try to escape, as most
+boys of his age would have done, for the wisdom put into his mind by the good
+spirits taught him that before he could reach the river and make use of the
+bridge the Bad One would have tracked him by his footsteps and been upon him.
+So, making himself very small and thin, he hid himself behind a pile of buffalo
+skins in the corner, first tearing a slit through one of them, so that he could
+see what was going on.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He had hardly settled himself when the servant entered the room, and, as she
+did so, the last bag of gold on the beam fell to the ground—for they had begun
+to fall directly the boy had taken the first one. She cried to her master that
+someone had stolen both the bag and the bridge, and the Bad One rushed in, mad
+with anger, and bade her go and seek for footsteps outside, that they might
+find out where the thief had gone. In a few minutes she returned, saying that
+he must be in the house, as she could not see any footsteps leading to the
+river, and began to move all the furniture in the room, without discovering
+Ball Carrier.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But he must be here somewhere,” she said to herself, examining for the second
+time the pile of buffalo skins; and Ball-Carrier, knowing that he could not
+possibly escape now, hastily wished that the Bad One should be unable to eat
+any more food at present.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, there is a slit in this one,” cried the servant, shaking the skin; “and
+here he is.” And she pulled out Ball-Carrier, looking so lean and small that he
+would hardly have made a mouthful for a sparrow.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Was it you who took my gold and bridge?” asked the Bad One.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes,” answered Ball-Carrier, “it was I who took them.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The Bad One made a sign to the woman, who inquired where he had hidden them. He
+lifted his left arm where the gold was, and she picked up a knife and scraped
+his skin so that no gold should be left sticking to it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What have you done with the bridge?” said she. And he lifted his right arm,
+from which she took the bridge, while the Bad One looked on, well pleased. “Be
+sure that he does not run away,” chuckled he. “Boil some water, and get him
+ready for cooking, while I go and invite my friends the water-demons to the
+feast.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The woman seized Ball-Carrier between her finger and thumb, and was going to
+carry him to the kitchen, when the boy spoke:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am very lean and small now,” he said, “hardly worth the trouble of cooking;
+but if you were to keep me two days, and gave me plenty of food, I should get
+big and fat. As it is, your friends the water-demons would think you meant to
+laugh at them, when they found that I was the feast.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, perhaps you are right,” answered the Bad One; “I will keep you for two
+days.” And he went out to visit the water-demons.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Meanwhile the servant, whose name was Lung Woman, led him into a little shed,
+and chained him up to a ring in the wall. But food was given him every hour,
+and at the end of two days he was as fat and big as a Christmas turkey, and
+could hardly move his head from one side to the other.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“He will do now,” said the Bad One, who came constantly to see how he was
+getting on. “I shall go and tell the water-demons that we expect them to dinner
+to-night. Put the kettle on the fire, but be sure on no account to taste the
+broth.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Lung-Woman lost no time in obeying her orders. She built up the fire, which had
+got very low, filled the kettle with water, and passing a rope which hung from
+the ceiling through the handle, swung it over the flames. Then she brought in
+Ball-Carrier, who, seeing all these preparations, wished that as long as he was
+in the kettle the water might not really boil, though it would hiss and bubble,
+and also, that the spirits would turn the water into fat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The kettle soon began to sing and bubble, and Ball Carrier was lifted in. Very
+soon the fat which was to make the sauce rose to the surface, and Ball-Carrier,
+who was bobbing about from one side to the other, called out that Lung-Woman
+had better taste the broth, as he though that some salt should be added to it.
+The servant knew quite well that her master had forbidden her to do any thing
+of the kind, but when once the idea was put into her head, she found the smell
+from the kettle so delicious that she unhooked a long ladle from the wall and
+plunged it into the kettle.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You will spill it all, if you stand so far off,” said the boy; “why don’t you
+come a little nearer?” And as she did so he cried to the spirits to give him
+back his usual size and strength and to make the water scalding hot Then he
+gave the kettle a kick, which upset all the boiling water upon her, and jumping
+over her body he seized once more the gold and the bridge, picked up his club
+and bow and arrows, and after setting fire to the Bad One’s hut, ran down to
+the river, which he crossed safely by the help of the bridge.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The hut, which was made of wood, was burned to the ground before the Bad One
+came back with a large crowd of water-demons. There was not a sign of anyone or
+anything, so he started for the river, where he saw Ball Carrier sitting
+quietly on the other side. Then the Bad One knew what had happened, and after
+telling the water demons that there would be no feast after all, he called to
+Ball-Carrier, who was eating an apple.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I know your name now,” he said, “and as you have ruined me, and I am not rich
+any more, will you take me as your servant?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, I will, though you have tried to kill me,” answered Ball-Carrier,
+throwing the bridge across the water as he spoke. But when the Bad One was in
+the midst of the stream, the boy wished it to become small; and the Bad One
+fell into the water and was drowned, and the world was rid of him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[U.S.. Bureau of Ethnology.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap03"></a>
+How Ball-carrier Finished His Task</h2>
+
+<p>
+After Ball-Carrier had managed to drown the Bad One so that he could not do any
+more mischief, he forgot the way to his grandmother’s house, and could not find
+it again, though he searched everywhere. During this time he wandered into many
+strange places, and had many adventures; and one day he came to a hut where a
+young girl lived. He was tired and hungry and begged her to let him in and
+rest, and he stayed a long while, and the girl became his wife. One morning he
+saw two children playing in front of the hut, and went out to speak to them.
+But as soon as they saw him they set up cries of horror and ran away. “They are
+the children of my sister who has been on a long journey,” replied his wife,
+“and now that she knows you are my husband she wants to kill you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, well, let her try,” replied Ball-Carrier. “It is not the first time people
+have wished to do that. And here I am still, you see!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Be careful,” said the wife, “she is very cunning.” But at this moment the
+sister-in-law came up.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“How do you do, brother-in-law? I have heard of you so often that I am very
+glad to meet you. I am told that you are more powerful than any man on earth,
+and as I am powerful too, let us try which is the strongest.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That will be delightful,” answered he. “Suppose we begin with a short race,
+and then we will go on to other things.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That will suit me very well,” replied the woman, who was a witch. “And let us
+agree that the one who wins shall have the right to kill the other.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, certainly,” said Ball-Carrier; and I don’t think we shall find a flatter
+course than the prairie itself—no one knows how many miles it stretches. We
+will run to the end and back again.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This being settled they both made ready for the race, and Ball-Carrier silently
+begged the good spirits to help him, and not to let him fall into the hands of
+this wicked witch.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“When the sun touches the trunk of that tree we will start,” said she, as they
+both stood side by side. But with the first step Ball-Carrier changed himself
+into a wolf and for a long way kept ahead. Then gradually he heard her creeping
+up behind him, and soon she was in front. So Ball-Carrier took the shape of a
+pigeon and flew rapidly past her, but in a little while she was in front again
+and the end of the prairie was in sight. “A crow can fly faster than a pigeon,”
+thought he, and as a crow he managed to pass her and held his ground so long
+that he fancied she was quite beaten. The witch began to be afraid of it too,
+and putting out all her strength slipped past him. Next he put on the shape of
+a hawk, and in this form he reached the bounds of the prairie, he and the witch
+turning homewards at the moment.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Bird after bird he tried, but every time the witch gained on him and took the
+lead. At length the goal was in sight, and Ball-Carrier knew that unless he
+could get ahead now he would be killed before his own door, under the eyes of
+his wife. His eyes had grown dim from fatigue, his wings flapped wearily and
+hardly bore him along, while the witch seemed as fresh as ever. What bird was
+there whose flight was swifter than his? Would not the good spirits tell him?
+Ah, of course he knew; why had he not thought of it at first and spared himself
+all that fatigue? And the next instant a humming bird, dressed in green and
+blue, flashed past the woman and entered the house. The witch came panting up,
+furious at having lost the race which she felt certain of winning; and
+Ball-Carrier, who had by this time changed back into his own shape, struck her
+on the head and killed her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For a long while Ball-Carrier was content to stay quietly at home with his wife
+and children, for he was tired of adventures, and only did enough hunting to
+supply the house with food. But one day he happened to eat some poisonous
+berries that he had found in the forest, and grew so ill that he felt he was
+going to die.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“When I am dead do not bury me in the earth,” he said, “but put me over there,
+among that clump of trees.” So his wife and her three children watched by him
+as long as he was alive, and after he was dead they took him up and laid the
+body on a platform of stakes which they had prepared in the grove. And as they
+returned weeping to the hut they caught a glimpse of the ball rolling away down
+the path back to the old grandmother. One of the sons sprang forward to stop
+it, for Ball-Carrier had often told them the tale of how it had helped him to
+cross the river, but it was too quick for him, and they had to content
+themselves with the war club and bow and arrows, which were put carefully away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By-and-by some travellers came past, and the chief among them asked leave to
+marry Ball-Carrier’s daughter. The mother said she must have a little time to
+think over it, as her daughter was still very young; so it was settled that the
+man should go away for a month with his friends, and then come back to see if
+the girl was willing.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now ever since Ball-Carrier’s death the family had been very poor, and often
+could not get enough to eat. One morning the girl, who had had no supper and no
+breakfast, wandered off to look for cranberries, and though she was quite near
+home was astonished at noticing a large hut, which certainly had not been there
+when last she had come that way. No one was about, so she ventured to peep in,
+and her surprise was increased at seeing, heaped up in one corner, a quantity
+of food of all sorts, while a little robin redbreast stood perched on a beam
+looking down upon her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is my father, I am sure,” she cried; and the bird piped in answer.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+From that day, whenever they wanted food they went to the hut, and though the
+robin could not speak, he would hop on their shoulders and let them feed him
+with the food they knew he liked best.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the man came back he found the girl looking so much prettier and fatter
+than when he had left her, that he insisted that they should be married on the
+spot. And the mother, who did not know how to get rid of him, gave in.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The husband spent all his time in hunting, and the family had never had so much
+meat before; but the man, who had seen for himself how poor they were, noticed
+with amazement that they did not seem to care about it, or to be hungry. “They
+must get food from somewhere,” he thought, and one morning, when he pretended
+to be going out to hunt, he hid in a thicket to watch. Very soon they all left
+the house together, and walked to the other hut, which the girl’s husband saw
+for the first time, as it was hid in a hollow. He followed, and noticed that
+each one went up to the redbreast, and shook him by the claw; and he then
+entered boldly and shook the bird’s claw too. The whole party afterwards sat
+down to dinner, after which they all returned to their own hut.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The next day the husband declared that he was very ill, and could not eat
+anything; but this was only a presence so that he might get what he wanted. The
+family were all much distressed, and begged him to tell them what food he
+fancied.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh! I could not eat any food,” he answered every time, and at each answer his
+voice grew fainter and fainter, till they thought he would die from weakness
+before their eyes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“There must be some thing you could take, if you would only say what it is,”
+implored his wife.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, nothing, nothing; except, perhaps—but of course that is impossible!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, I am sure it is not,” replied she; “you shall have it, I promise—only tell
+me what it is.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I think—but I could not ask you to do such a thing. Leave me alone, and let me
+die quietly.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You shall not die,” cried the girl, who was very fond of her husband, for he
+did not beat her as most girls’ husbands did. “Whatever it is, I will manage to
+get it for you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, then, I think, if I had that—redbreast, nicely roasted, I could eat a
+little bit of his wing!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The wife started back in horror at such a request; but the man turned his face
+to the wall, and took no notice, as he thought it was better to leave her to
+herself for a little.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Weeping and wringing her hands, the girl went down to her mother. The brothers
+were very angry when they heard the story, and declared that, if any one were
+to die, it certainly should not be the robin. But all that night the man seemed
+getting weaker and weaker, and at last, quite early, the wife crept out, and
+stealing to the hut, killed the bird, and brought him home to her husband.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Just as she was going to cook it her two brothers came in. They cried out in
+horror at the sight, and, rushing out of the hut, declared they would never see
+her any more. And the poor girl, with a heavy heart, took the body of the
+redbreast up to her husband.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But directly she entered the room the man told her that he felt a great deal
+better, and that he would rather have a piece of bear’s flesh, well boiled,
+than any bird, however tender. His wife felt very miserable to think that their
+beloved redbreast had been sacrificed for nothing, and begged him to try a
+little bit.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You felt so sure that it would do you good before,” said she, “that I can’t
+help thinking it would quite cure you now.” But the man only flew into a rage,
+and flung the bird out of the window. Then he got up and went out.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now all this while the ball had been rolling, rolling, rolling to the old
+grandmother’s hut on the other side of the world, and directly it rolled into
+her hut she knew that her grandson must be dead. Without wasting any time she
+took a fox skin and tied it round her forehead, and fastened another round her
+waist, as witches always do when they leave their own homes. When she was ready
+she said to the ball: “Go back the way you came, and lead me to my grandson.”
+And the ball started with the old woman following.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was a long journey, even for a witch, but, like other things, it ended at
+last; and the old woman stood before the platform of stakes, where the body of
+Ball-Carrier lay.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Wake up, my grandson, it is time to go home,” the witch said. And Ball-Carrier
+stepped down oft the platform, and brought his club and bow and arrows out of
+the hut, and set out, for the other side of the world, behind the old woman.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When they reached the hut where Ball-Carrier had fasted so many years ago, the
+old woman spoke for the first time since they had started on their way.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“My grandson, did you ever manage to get that gold from the Bad One?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, grandmother, I got it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where is it?” she asked.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Here, in my left arm-pit,” answered he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So she picked up a knife and scraped away all the gold which had stuck to his
+skin, and which had been sticking there ever since he first stole it. After she
+had finished she asked again:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“My grandson, did you manage to get that bridge from the Bad One?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, grandmother, I got that too,” answered he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where is it?” she asked, and Ball-Carrier lifted his right arm, and pointed to
+his arm-pit.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Here is the bridge, grandmother,” said he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then the witch did something that nobody in the world could have guessed that
+she would do. First, she took the gold and said to Ball-carrier:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“My grandson, this gold must be hidden in the earth, for if people think they
+can get it when they choose, they will become lazy and stupid. But if we take
+it and bury it in different parts of the world they will have to work for it if
+they want it, and then will only find a little at a time.” And as she spoke,
+she pulled up one of the poles of the hut, and Ball-Carrier saw that underneath
+was a deep, deep hole, which seemed to have no bottom. Down this hole she
+poured all the gold, and when it was out of sight it ran about all over the
+world, where people that dig hard sometimes find it. And after that was done
+she put the pole back again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Next she lifted down a spade from a high shelf, where it had grown quite rusty,
+and dug a very small hole on the opposite side of the hut—very small, but very
+deep.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Give me the bridge,” said she, “for I am going to bury it here. If anyone was
+to get hold of it, and find that they could cross rivers and seas without any
+trouble, they would never discover how to cross them for themselves. I am a
+witch, and if I had chosen I could easily have cast my spells over the Bad One,
+and have made him deliver them to you the first day you came into my hut. But
+then you would never have fasted, and never have planned how to get what you
+wanted, and never have known the good spirits, and would have been fat and idle
+to the end of your days. And now go; in that hut, which you can just see far
+away, live your father and mother, who are old people now, and need a son to
+hunt for them. You have done what you were set to do, and I need you no more.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then Ball-Carrier remembered his parents and went back to them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[From Bureau of Ethnology. “Indian Folklore.“]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap04"></a>
+The Bunyip</h2>
+
+<p>
+Long, long ago, far, far away on the other side of the world, some young men
+left the camp where they lived to get some food for their wives and children.
+The sun was hot, but they liked heat, and as they went they ran races and tried
+who could hurl his spear the farthest, or was cleverest in throwing a strange
+weapon called a boomerang, which always returns to the thrower. They did not
+get on very fast at this rate, but presently they reached a flat place that in
+time of flood was full of water, but was now, in the height of summer, only a
+set of pools, each surrounded with a fringe of plants, with bulrushes standing
+in the inside of all. In that country the people are fond of the roots of
+bulrushes, which they think as good as onions, and one of the young men said
+that they had better collect some of the roots and carry them back to the camp.
+It did not take them long to weave the tops of the willows into a basket, and
+they were just going to wade into the water and pull up the bulrush roots when
+a youth suddenly called out: “After all, why should we waste our time in doing
+work that is only fit for women and children? Let them come and get the roots
+for themselves; but we will fish for eels and anything else we can get.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This delighted the rest of the party, and they all began to arrange their
+fishing lines, made from the bark of the yellow mimosa, and to search for bait
+for their hooks. Most of them used worms, but one, who had put a piece of raw
+meat for dinner into his skin wallet, cut off a little bit and baited his line
+with it, unseen by his companions.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For a long time they cast patiently, without receiving a single bite; the sun
+had grown low in the sky, and it seemed as if they would have to go home
+empty-handed, not even with a basket of roots to show; when the youth, who had
+baited his hook with raw meat, suddenly saw his line disappear under the water.
+Something, a very heavy fish he supposed, was pulling so hard that he could
+hardly keep his feet, and for a few minutes it seemed either as if he must let
+go or be dragged into the pool. He cried to his friends to help him, and at
+last, trembling with fright at what they were going to see, they managed
+between them to land on the bank a creature that was neither a calf nor a seal,
+but something of both, with a long, broad tail. They looked at each other with
+horror, cold shivers running down their spines; for though they had never
+beheld it, there was not a man amongst them who did not know what it was—the
+cub of the awful Bunyip!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All of a sudden the silence was broken by a low wail, answered by another from
+the other side of the pool, as the mother rose up from her den and came towards
+them, rage flashing from her horrible yellow eyes. “Let it go! let it go!”
+whispered the young men to each other; but the captor declared that he had
+caught it, and was going to keep it. “He had promised his sweetheart,” he said,
+“that he would bring back enough meat for her father’s house to feast on for
+three days, and though they could not eat the little Bunyip, her brothers and
+sisters should have it to play with.” So, flinging his spear at the mother to
+keep her back, he threw the little Bunyip on to his shoulders, and set out for
+the camp, never heeding the poor mother’s cries of distress.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By this time it was getting near sunset, and the plain was in shadow, though
+the tops of the mountains were still quite bright. The youths had all ceased to
+be afraid, when they were startled by a low rushing sound behind them, and,
+looking round, saw that the pool was slowly rising, and the spot where they had
+landed the Bunyip was quite covered. “What could it be?” they asked one of
+another; “there was not a cloud in the sky, yet the water had risen higher
+already than they had ever known it do before.” For an instant they stood
+watching as if they were frozen, then they turned and ran with all their might,
+the man with the Bunyip running faster than all. When he reached a high peak
+over-looking all the plain he stopped to take breath, and turned to see if he
+was safe yet. Safe! why only the tops of the trees remained above that sea of
+water, and these were fast disappearing. They must run fast indeed if they were
+to escape. So on they flew, scarcely feeling the ground as they went, till they
+flung themselves on the ground before the holes scooped out of the earth where
+they had all been born. The old men were sitting in front, the children were
+playing, and the women chattering together, when the little Bunyip fell into
+their midst, and there was scarcely a child among them who did not know that
+something terrible was upon them. “The water! the water!” gasped one of the
+young men; and there it was, slowly but steadily mounting the ridge itself.
+Parents and children clung together, as if by that means they could drive back
+the advancing flood; and the youth who had caused all this terrible
+catastrophe, seized his sweetheart, and cried: “I will climb with you to the
+top of that tree, and there no waters can reach us.” But, as he spoke,
+something cold touched him, and quickly he glanced down at his feet. Then with
+a shudder he saw that they were feet no longer, but bird’s claws. He looked at
+the girl he was clasping, and beheld a great black bird standing at his side;
+he turned to his friends, but a flock of great awkward flapping creatures stood
+in their place He put up his hands to cover his face, but they were no more
+hands, only the ends of wings; and when he tried to speak, a noise such as he
+had never heard before seemed to come from his throat, which had suddenly
+become narrow and slender. Already the water had risen to his waist, and he
+found himself sitting easily upon it, while its surface reflected back the
+image of a black swan, one of many.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Never again did the swans become men; but they are still different from other
+swans, for in the night-time those who listen can hear them talk in a language
+that is certainly not swan’s language; and there are even sounds of laughing
+and talking, unlike any noise made by the swans whom we know.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The little Bunyip was carried home by its mother, and after that the waters
+sank back to their own channels. The side of the pool where she lives is always
+shunned by everyone, as nobody knows when she may suddenly put out her head and
+draw him into her mighty jaws. But people say that underneath the black waters
+of the pool she has a house filled with beautiful things, such as mortals who
+dwell on the earth have no idea of. Though how they know I cannot tell you, as
+nobody has ever seen it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[From Journal of Anthropological-Institute.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap05"></a>
+Father Grumbler</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time there lived a man who had nearly as many children as there
+were sparrows in the garden. He had to work very hard all day to get them
+enough to eat, and was often tired and cross, and abused everything and
+everybody, so that people called him “Father Grumbler.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By-and-by he grew weary of always working, and on Sundays he lay a long while
+in bed, instead of going to church. Then after a time he found it dull to sit
+so many hours by himself, thinking of nothing but how to pay the rent that was
+owing, and as the tavern across the road looked bright and cheerful, he walked
+in one day and sat down with his friends. “It was just to chase away Care,” he
+said; but when he came out, hours and hours after, Care came out with him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Father Grumbler entered his house feeling more dismal than when he left it, for
+he knew that he had wasted both his time and his money.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will go and see the Holy Man in the cave near the well,” he said to himself,
+“and perhaps he can tell me why all the luck is for other people, and only
+misfortunes happen to me.” And he set out at once for the cave.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was a long way off, and the road led over mountains and through valleys; but
+at last he reached the cave where the Holy Man dwelt, and knocked at the door.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Who is there?” asked a voice from within.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is I, Holy Man, Father Grumbler, you know, who has as many children as
+sparrows in the garden.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, and what is it that you want?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I want to know why other people have all the luck, and only misfortunes happen
+to me!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The Holy Man did not answer, but went into an inner cave, from which he came
+out bearing something in his hand. “Do you see this basket?” said he. “It is a
+magical basket, and if you are hungry you have only got to say: ‘Little basket,
+little basket, do your duty,’ and you will eat the best dinner you ever had in
+your life. But when you have had enough, be sure you don’t forget to cry out:
+‘That will do for to-day.’ Oh!—and one thing more—you need not show it to
+everybody and declare that I have give it to you. Do you understand?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Father Grumbler was always accustomed to think of himself as so unlucky that he
+did not know whether the Holy Man was not playing a trick upon him; but he took
+the basket without being polite enough to say either “Thank you,” or
+“Good-morning,” and went away. However, he only waited till he was out of sight
+of the cave before he stooped down and whispered: “Little basket, little
+basket, do your duty.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the basket had a lid, so that he could not see what was inside, but he
+heard quite clearly strange noises, as if a sort of scuffling was going on.
+Then the lid burst open, and a quantity of delicious little white rolls came
+tumbling out one after the other, followed by a stream of small fishes all
+ready cooked. What a quantity there were to be sure! The whole road was covered
+with them, and the banks on each side were beginning to disappear. Father
+Grumbler felt quite frightened at the torrent, but at last he remembered what
+the Holy Man had told him, and cried at the top of his voice: “Enough! enough!
+That will do for to-day!” And the lid of the basket closed with a snap.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Father Grumbler sighed with relief and happiness as he looked around him, and
+sitting down on a heap of stones, he ate till he could eat no more. Trout,
+salmon, turbot, soles, and a hundred other fishes whose names he did not know,
+lay boiled, fried, and grilled within reach of his hands. As the Holy Man had
+said, he had never eaten such a dinner; still, when he had done, he shook his
+head, and grumbled; “Yes, there is plenty to eat, of course, but it only makes
+me thirsty, and there is not a drop to drink anywhere.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Yet, somehow, he could never tell why, he looked up and saw the tavern in front
+of him, which he thought was miles, and miles, and miles away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Bring the best wine you have got, and two glasses, good mother,” he said as he
+entered, “and if you are fond of fish there is enough here to feed the house.
+Only there is no need to chatter about it all over the place. You understand?
+Eh?” And without waiting for an answer he whispered to the basket: “Little
+basket, little basket, do your duty.” The innkeeper and his wife thought that
+their customer had gone suddenly mad, and watched him closely, ready to spring
+on him if he became violent; but both instinctively jumped backwards, nearly
+into the fire, as rolls and fishes of every kind came tumbling out of the
+basket, covering the tables and chairs and the floor, and even overflowing into
+the street.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Be quick, be quick, and pick them up,” cried the man. “And if these are not
+enough, there are plenty more to be had for the asking.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The innkeeper and his wife did not need telling twice. Down they went on their
+knees and gathered up everything they could lay hands on. But busy though they
+seemed, they found time to whisper to each other:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If we can only get hold of that basket it will make our fortune!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So they began by inviting Father Grumbler to sit down to the table, and brought
+out the best wine in the cellar, hoping it might loosen his tongue. But Father
+Grumbler was wiser than they gave him credit for, and though they tried in all
+manner of ways to find out who had given him the basket, he put them off, and
+kept his secret to himself. Unluckily, though he did not SPEAK, he did drink,
+and it was not long before he fell fast asleep. Then the woman fetched from her
+kitchen a basket, so like the magic one that no one, without looking very
+closely, could tell the difference, and placed it in Father Grumbler’s hand,
+while she hid the other carefully away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was dinner time when the man awoke, and, jumping up hastily, he set out for
+home, where he found all the children gathered round a basin of thin soup, and
+pushing their wooden bowls forward, hoping to have the first spoonful. Their
+father burst into the midst of them, bearing his basket, and crying:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Don’t spoil your appetites, children, with that stuff. Do you see this basket?
+Well, I have only got to say, ‘Little basket, little basket, do your duty,’ and
+you will see what will happen. Now you shall say it instead of me, for a
+treat.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The children, wondering and delighted, repeated the words, but nothing
+happened. Again and again they tried, but the basket was only a basket, with a
+few scales of fish sticking to the bottom, for the innkeeper’s wife had taken
+it to market the day before.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What is the matter with the thing?” cried the father at last, snatching the
+basket from them, and turning it all over, grumbling and swearing while he did
+so, under the eyes of his astonished wife and children, who did not know
+whether to cry or to laugh.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It certainly smells of fish,” he said, and then he stopped, for a sudden
+thought had come to him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Suppose it is not mine at all; supposing—Ah, the scoundrels!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And without listening to his wife and children, who were frightened at his
+strange conduct and begged him to stay at home, he ran across to the tavern and
+burst open the door.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Can I do anything for you, Father Grumbler?” asked the innkeeper’s wife in her
+softest voice.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I have taken the wrong basket—by mistake, of course,” said he. “Here is yours,
+will you give me back my own?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why, what are you talking about?” answered she. “You can see for yourself that
+there is no basket here.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And though Father Grumbler DID look, it was quite true that none was to be
+seen.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Come, take a glass to warm you this cold day,” said the woman, who was anxious
+to keep him in a good temper, and as this was an invitation Father Grumbler
+never refused, he tossed it off and left the house.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He took the road that led to the Holy Man’s cave, and made such haste that it
+was not long before he reached it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Who is there?” said a voice in answer to his knock.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is me, it is me, Holy man. You know quite well. Father Grumbler, who has as
+many children as sparrows in the garden.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But, my good man, it was only yesterday that I gave you a handsome present.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, Holy Man, and here it is. But something has happened, I don’t know what,
+and it won’t work any more.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, put it down. I will go and see if I can find anything for you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In a few minutes the Holy Man returned with a cock under his arm.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Listen to me,” he said, “whenever you want money, you only have to say: ‘Show
+me what you can do, cock,’ and you will see some wonderful things. But,
+remember, it is not necessary to let all the world into the secret.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh no, Holy Man, I am not so foolish as that.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Nor to tell everybody that I gave it to you,” went on the Holy Man. “I have
+not got these treasures by the dozen.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And without waiting for an answer he shut the door.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As before, the distance seemed to have wonderfully shortened, and in a moment
+the tavern rose up in front of Father Grumbler. Without stopping to think, he
+went straight in, and found the innkeeper’s wife in the kitchen making a cake.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where have you come from, with that fine red cock in your basket,” asked she,
+for the bird was so big that the lid would not shut down properly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I come from a place where they don’t keep these things by the dozen,” he
+replied, sitting down in front of the table.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The woman said no more, but set before him a bottle of his favourite wine, and
+soon he began to wish to display his prize.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Show me what you can do, cock,” cried he. And the cock stood up and flapped
+his wings three times, crowing “coquerico” with a voice like a trumpet, and at
+each crow there fell from his beak golden drops, and diamonds as large as peas.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This time Father Grumbler did not invite the innkeeper’s wife to pick up his
+treasures, but put his own hat under the cock’s beak, so as to catch everything
+he let fall; and he did not see the husband and wife exchanging glances with
+each other which said, “That would be a splendid cock to put with our basket.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Have another glass of wine?” suggested the innkeeper, when they had finished
+admiring the beauty of the cock, for they pretended not to have seen the gold
+or the diamonds. And Father Grumbler, nothing loth, drank one glass after
+another, till his head fell forward on the table, and once more he was sound
+asleep. Then the woman gently coaxed the cock from the basket and carried it
+off to her own poultry yard, from which she brought one exactly like it, and
+popped it in its place.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Night was falling when the man awoke, and throwing proudly some grains of gold
+on the table to pay for the wine he had drunk, he tucked the cock comfortably
+into his basket and set out for home.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+His wife and all the children were waiting for him at the door, and as soon as
+she caught sight of him she broke out:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You are a nice man to go wasting your time and your money drinking in that
+tavern, and leaving us to starve! Aren’t you ashamed of yourself?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You don’t know what you are talking of,” he answered. “Money? Why, I have gold
+and diamonds now, as much as I want. Do you see that cock? Well, you have only
+to say to him, ‘Show me what you can do, cock,’ and something splendid will
+happen.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Neither wife nor children were inclined to put much faith in him after their
+last experience; however, they thought it was worth trying, and did as he told
+them. The cock flew round the room like a mad thing, and crowed till their
+heads nearly split with the noise; but no gold or diamonds dropped on the brick
+floor—not the tiniest grain of either.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Father Grumbler stared in silence for an instant, and then he began to swear so
+loudly that even his family, accustomed as they were to his language, wondered
+at him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last he grew a little quieter, but remained as puzzled as ever.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Can I have forgotten the words? But I KNOW that was what he said! And I saw
+the diamonds with my own eyes!” Then suddenly he seized the cock, shut it into
+the basket, and rushed out of the house.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+His heavy wooden shoes clattered as he ran along the road, and he made such
+haste that the stars were only just beginning to come out when he reached the
+cave of the Holy Man.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Who is that knocking?” asked a voice from within.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is me! It is me! Holy Man! you know! Father—”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But, my good fellow, you really should give some one else a chance. This is
+the third time you have been—and at such an hour, too!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, yes, Holy Man, I know it is very late, but you will forgive me! It is your
+cock—there is something the matter. It is like the basket. Look!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“THAT my cock? THAT my basket? Somebody has played you a trick, my good man!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“A trick?” repeated Father Grumbler, who began to understand what had happened.
+“Then it must have been those two—”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I warned you not to show them to anybody,” said the Holy Man. “You deserve—but
+I will give you one more chance.” And, turning, he unhooked something from the
+wall.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“When you wish to dust your own jacket or those of your friends,” he said, “you
+have only got to say, ‘Flack, flick, switch, be quick,’ and you will see what
+happens. That is all I have to tell you.” And, smiling to himself, the Holy Man
+pushed Father Grumbler out of the cave.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, I understand now,” muttered the good man, as he took the road home; “but I
+think I have got you two rascals!” and he hurried on to the tavern with his
+basket under his arm, and the cock and the switch both inside.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Good evening, friends!” he said, as he entered the inn. “I am very hungry, and
+should be glad if you would roast this cock for me as soon as possible. THIS
+cock and no other—mind what I say,” he went on. “Oh, and another thing! You can
+light the fire with this basket. When you have done that I will show you
+something I have in my bag,” and, as he spoke, he tried to imitate the smile
+that the Holy Man had given HIM.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+These directions made the innkeeper’s wife very uneasy. However, she said
+nothing, and began to roast the cock, while her husband did his best to make
+the man sleepy with wine, but all in vain.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After dinner, which he did not eat without grumbling, for the cock was very
+tough, the man struck his hand on the table, and said: “Now listen to me. Go
+and fetch my cock and my basket, at once. Do you hear?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Your cock, and your basket, Father Grumbler? But you have just—”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“MY cock and MY basket!” interrupted he. “And, if you are too deaf and too
+stupid to understand what that means, I have got something which may help to
+teach you.” And opening the bag, he cried: “Flack, flick, switch, be quick.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And flack! flick! like lightening a white switch sprang out of the bag, and
+gave such hearty blows to the innkeeper and his wife, and to Father Grumbler
+into the bargain, that they all jumped as high as feathers when a mattress is
+shaken.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Stop! stop! make it stop, and you shall have back your cock and basket,” cried
+the man and his wife. And Father Grumbler, who had no wish to go on, called out
+between his hops: “Stop then, can’t you? That is enough for to-day!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the switch paid no attention, and dealt out its blows as before, and MIGHT
+have been dealing them to this day, if the Holy Man had not heard their cries
+and come to the rescue. “Into the bag, quick!” said he, and the switch obeyed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now go and fetch me the cock and the basket,” and the woman went without a
+word, and placed them on the table.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You have all got what you deserved,” continued the Holy Man, “and I have no
+pity for any of you. I shall take my treasures home, and perhaps some day I may
+find a man who knows how to make the best of the chances that are given to him.
+But that will never be YOU,” he added, turning to Father Grumbler.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[From Contes Populaires.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap06"></a>
+The Story of the Yara</h2>
+
+<p>
+Down in the south, where the sun shines so hotly that everything and everybody
+sleeps all day, and even the great forests seem silent, except early in the
+morning and late in the evening—down in this country there once lived a young
+man and a maiden. The girl had been born in the town, and had scarcely ever
+left it; but the young man was a native of another country, and had only come
+to the city near the great river because he could find no work to do where he
+was.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+A few months after his arrival, when the days were cooler, and the people did
+not sleep so much as usual, a great feast was held a little way out of the
+town, and to this feast everyone flocked from thirty miles and more. Some
+walked and some rode, some came in beautiful golden coaches; but all had on
+splendid dresses of red or blue, while wreaths of flowers rested on their hair.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was the first time that the youth had been present on such an occasion, and
+he stood silently aside watching the graceful dances and the pretty games
+played by the young people. And as he watched, he noticed one girl, dressed in
+white with scarlet pomegranates in her hair, who seemed to him lovelier than
+all the rest.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the feast was over, and the young man returned home, his manner was so
+strange that it drew the attention of all his friends.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Through his work next day the youth continued to see the girl’s face, throwing
+the ball to her companions, or threading her way between them as she danced. At
+night sleep fled from him, and after tossing for hours on his bed, he would get
+up and plunge into a deep pool that lay a little way in the forest.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This state of things went on for some weeks, then at last chance favoured him.
+One evening, as he was passing near the house where she lived, he saw her
+standing with her back to the wall, trying to beat off with her fan the attacks
+of a savage dog that was leaping at her throat. Alonzo, for such was his name,
+sprang forward, and with one blow of his fist stretched the creature dead upon
+the road. He then helped the frightened and half-fainting girl into the large
+cool verandah where her parents were sitting, and from that hour he was a
+welcome guest in the house, and it was not long before he was the promised
+husband of Julia.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Every day, when his work was done, he used to go up to the house, half hidden
+among flowering plants and brilliant creepers, where humming-birds darted from
+bush to bush, and parrots of all colours, red and green and grey, shrieked in
+chorus. There he would find the maiden waiting for him, and they would spend an
+hour or two under the stars, which looked so large and bright that you felt as
+if you could almost touch them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What did you do last night after you went home?” suddenly asked the girl one
+evening.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Just the same as I always do,” answered he. “It was too hot to sleep, so it
+was no use going to bed, and I walked straight of to the forest and bathed in
+one of those deep dark pools at the edge of the river. I have been there
+constantly for several months, but last night a strange thing happened. I was
+taking my last plunge, when I heard—sometimes from one side, and sometimes from
+another—the sound of a voice singing more sweetly than any nightingale, though
+I could not catch any words. I left the pool, and, dressing myself as fast as I
+could, I searched every bush and tree round the water, as I fancied that
+perhaps it was my friend who was playing a trick on me, but there was not a
+creature to be seen; and when I reached home I found my friend fast asleep.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As Julia listened her face grew deadly white, and her whole body shivered as if
+with cold. From her childhood she had heard stories of the terrible beings that
+lived in the forests and were hidden under the banks of the rivers, and could
+only be kept off by powerful charms. Could the voice which had bewitched Alonzo
+have come from one of these? Perhaps, who knows, it might be the voice of the
+dreaded Yara herself, who sought young men on the eve of their marriage as her
+prey.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For a moment the girl sat choked with fear, as these thoughts rushed through
+her; then she said: “Alonzo, will you promise something?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What is that?” asked he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is something that has to do with our future happiness.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh! it is serious, then? Well, of course I promise. Now tell me!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I want you to promise,” she answered, lowering her voice to a whisper, “never
+to bathe in those pools again.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But why not, queen of my soul; have I not gone there always, and nothing has
+harmed me, flower of my heart?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No; but perhaps something will. If you will not promise I shall go mad with
+fright. Promise me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why, what is the matter? You look so pale! Tell me why you are so frightened?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Did you not hear the song?” she asked, trembling.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Suppose I did, how could that hurt me? It was the loveliest song I ever
+heard!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, and after the song will come the apparition; and after that— after that—”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I don’t understand. Well—after that?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“After that—death.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Alonzo stared at her. Had she really gone mad? Such talk was very unlike Julia;
+but before he could collect his senses the girl spoke again:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That is the reason why I implore you never to go there again; at any rate till
+after we are married.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“And what difference will our marriage make?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, there will be no danger then; you can go to bathe as often as you like!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But tell me why you are so afraid?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Because the voice you heard—I know you will laugh, but it is quite true—it was
+the voice of the Yara.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At these words Alonzo burst into a shout of laughter; but it sounded so harsh
+and loud that Julia shrank away shuddering. It seemed as if he could not stop
+himself, and the more he laughed the paler the poor girl became, murmuring to
+herself as she watched him:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, heaven! you have seen her! you have seen her! what shall I do?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Faint as was her whisper, it reached the ears of Alonzo, who, though he still
+could not speak for laughing, shook his head.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You may not know it, but it is true. Nobody who has not seen the Yara laughs
+like that.” And Julia flung herself on the ground weeping bitterly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this sight Alonzo became suddenly grave, and kneeling by her side, gently
+raised her up.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Do not cry so, my angel,” he said, “I will promise anything you please. Only
+let me see you smile again.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+With a great effort Julia checked her sobs, and rose to her feet.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Thank you,” she answered. “My heart grows lighter as you say that! I know you
+will try to keep your word and to stay away from the forest. But—the power of
+the Yara is very strong, and the sound of her voice is apt to make men forget
+everything else in the world. Oh, I have seen it, and more than one betrothed
+maiden lives alone, broken-hearted. If ever you should return to the pool where
+you first heard the voice, promise me that you will at least take this with
+you.” And opening a curiously carved box, she took out a sea-shell shot with
+many colours, and sang a song softly into it. “The moment you hear the Yara’s
+voice,” said she, “put this to your ear, and you will hear my song instead.
+Perhaps—I do not know for certain—but perhaps, I may be stronger than the
+Yara.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was late that night when Alonzo returned home. The moon was shining on the
+distant river, which looked cool and inviting, and the trees of the forest
+seemed to stretch out their arms and beckon him near. But the young man
+steadily turned his face in the other direction, and went home to bed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The struggle had been hard, but Alonzo had his reward next day in the joy and
+relief with which Julia greeted him. He assured her that having overcome the
+temptation once the danger was now over; but she, knowing better than he did
+the magic of the Yara’s face and voice, did not fail to make him repeat his
+promise when he went away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For three nights Alonzo kept his word, not because he believed in the Yara, for
+he thought that the tales about her were all nonsense, but because he could not
+bear the tears with which he knew that Julia would greet him, if he confessed
+that he had returned to the forest. But, in spite of this, the song rang in his
+ears, and daily grew louder.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+On the fourth night the attraction of the forest grew so strong that neither
+the thought of Julia nor the promises he had made her could hold him back. At
+eleven o’clock he plunged into the cool darkness of the trees, and took the
+path that led straight to the river. Yet, for the first time, he found that
+Julia’s warnings, though he had laughed at her at the moment, had remained in
+his memory, and he glanced at the bushes with a certain sense of fear which was
+quite new to him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When he reached the river he paused and looked round for a moment to make sure
+that the strange feeling of some one watching him was fancy, and he was really
+alone. But the moon shone brightly on every tree, and nothing was to be seen
+but his own shadow; nothing was to be heard but the sound of the rippling
+stream.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He threw off his clothes, and was just about to dive in headlong, when
+something—he did not know what—suddenly caused him to look round. At the same
+instant the moon passed from behind a cloud, and its rays fell on a beautiful
+golden-haired woman standing half hidden by the ferns.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+With one bound he caught up his mantle, and rushed headlong down the path he
+had come, fearing at each step to feel a hand laid on his shoulder. It was not
+till he had left the last trees behind him, and was standing in the open plain,
+that he dared to look round, and then he thought a figure in white was still
+standing there waving her arms to and fro. This was enough; he ran along the
+road harder than ever, and never paused till he was save in his own room.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+With the earliest rays of dawn he went back to the forest to see whether he
+could find any traces of the Yara, but though he searched every clump of
+bushes, and looked up every tree, everything was empty, and the only voices he
+heard were those of parrots, which are so ugly that they only drive people
+away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I think I must be mad,” he said to himself, “and have dreamt all that folly”;
+and going back to the city he began his daily work. But either that was harder
+than usual, or he must be ill, for he could not fix his mind upon it, and
+everybody he came across during the day inquired if anything had happened to
+give him that white, frightened look.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I must be feverish,” he said to himself; “after all, it is rather dangerous to
+take a cold bath when one is feeling so hot.” Yet he knew, while he said it,
+that he was counting the hours for night to come, that he might return to the
+forest.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In the evening he went as usual to the creeper-covered house. But he had better
+have stayed away, as his face was so pale and his manner so strange, that the
+poor girl saw that something terrible had occurred. Alonzo, however, refused to
+answer any of her questions, and all she could get was a promise to hear
+everything the next day.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+On pretence of a violent headache, he left Julia much earlier than usual and
+hurried quickly home. Taking down a pistol, he loaded it and put it in his
+belt, and a little before midnight he stole out on the tips of his toes, so as
+to disturb nobody. Once outside he hastened down the road which led to the
+forest.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He did not stop till he had reached the river pool, when holding the pistol in
+his hand, he looked about him. At every little noise—the falling of a leaf, the
+rustle of an animal in the bushes, the cry of a night-bird—he sprang up and
+cocked his pistol in the direction of the sound. But though the moon still
+shone he saw nothing, and by and by a kind of dreamy state seemed to steal over
+him as he leant against a tree.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+How long he remained in this condition he could not have told, but suddenly he
+awoke with a start, on hearing his name uttered softly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Who is that?” he cried, standing upright instantly; but only an echo answered
+him. Then his eyes grew fascinated with the dark waters of the pool close to
+his feet, and he looked at it as if he could never look away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He gazed steadily into the depths for some minutes, when he became aware that
+down in the darkness was a bright spark, which got rapidly bigger and brighter.
+Again that feeling of awful fear took possession of him, and he tried to turn
+his eyes from the pool. But it was no use; something stronger than himself
+compelled him to keep them there.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last the waters parted softly, and floating on the surface he saw the
+beautiful woman whom he had fled from only a few nights before. He turned to
+run, but his feet were glued to the spot.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+She smiled at him and held out her arms, but as she did so there came over him
+the remembrance of Julia, as he had seen her a few hours earlier, and her
+warnings and fears for the very danger in which he now found himself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Meanwhile the figure was always drawing nearer, nearer; but, with a violent
+effort, Alonzo shook off his stupor, and taking aim at her shoulder he pulled
+the trigger. The report awoke the sleeping echoes, and was repeated all through
+the forest, but the figure smiled still, and went on advancing. Again Alonzo
+fired, and a second time the bullet whistled through the air, and the figure
+advanced nearer. A moment more, and she would be at his side.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then, his pistol being empty, he grasped the barrel with both hands, and stood
+ready to use it as a club should the Yara approach and closer. But now it
+seemed her turn to feel afraid, for she paused an instant while he pressed
+forward, still holding the pistol above his head, prepared to strike.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In his excitement he had forgotten the river, and it was not till the cold
+water touched his feet that he stood still by instinct. The Yara saw that he
+was wavering, and suffering herself to sway gently backwards and forwards on
+the surface of the river, she began to sing. The song floated through the
+trees, now far and now near; no one could tell whence it came, the whole air
+seemed full of it. Alonzo felt his senses going and his will failing. His arms
+dropped heavily to his side, but in falling struck against the sea shell,
+which, as he had promised Julia, he had always carried in his coat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+His dimmed mind was just clear enough to remember what she had said, and with
+trembling fingers, that were almost powerless to grasp, he drew it out. As he
+did so the song grew sweeter and more tender than before, but he shut his ears
+to it and bent his head over the shell. Out of its depths arose the voice of
+Julia singing to him as she had sung when she gave him the shell, and though
+the notes sounded faint at first, they swelled louder and louder till the mist
+which had gathered about him was blown away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then he raised his head, feeling that he had been through strange places, where
+he could never wander any more; and he held himself erect and strong, and
+looked about him. Nothing was to be seen but the shining of the river, and the
+dark shadows of the trees; nothing was to be heard but the hum of the insects,
+as they darted through the night.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Adapted from Folklore Bresilien.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap07"></a>
+The Cunning Hare</h2>
+
+<p>
+In a very cold country, far across the seas, where ice and snow cover the
+ground for many months in the year, there lived a little hare, who, as his
+father and mother were both dead, was brought up by his grandmother. As he was
+too young, and she was too old, to work, they were very poor, and often did not
+have enough to eat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day, when the little fellow was hungrier than usual, he asked his
+grandmother if he might go down to the river and catch a fish for their
+breakfast, as the thaw had come and the water was flowing freely again. She
+laughed at him for thinking that any fish would let itself be caught by a hare,
+especially such a young one; but as she had the rheumatism very badly, and
+could get no food herself, she let him go. “If he does not catch a fish he may
+find something else,” she said to herself. So she told her grandson where to
+look for the net, and how he was to set it across the river; but just as he was
+starting, feeling himself quite a man, she called him back.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“After all, I don’t know what is the use of your going, my boy! For even if you
+should catch a fish, I have no fire to cook it with.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Let me catch my fish, and I will soon make you a fire,” he answered gaily, for
+he was young, and knew nothing about the difficulties of fire-making.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It took him some time to haul the net through bushes and over fields, but at
+length he reached a pool in the river which he had often heard was swarming
+with fish, and here he set the net, as his grandmother had directed him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He was so excited that he hardly slept all night, and at the very first streak
+of dawn he ran as fast as ever he could down to the river. His heart beat as
+quickly as if he had had dogs behind him, and he hardly dared to look, lest he
+should be disappointed. Would there be even one fish? And at this thought the
+pangs of hunger made him feel quite sick with fear. But he need not have been
+afraid; in every mesh of the net was a fine fat fish, and of course the net
+itself was so heavy that he could only lift one corner. He threw some of the
+fish back into the water, and buried some more in a hole under a stone, where
+he would be sure to find them. Then he rolled up the net with the rest, put it
+on his back and carried it home. The weight of the load caused his back to
+ache, and he was thankful to drop it outside their hut, while he rushed in,
+full of joy, to tell his grandmother. “Be quick and clean them!” he said, “and
+I will go to those people’s tents on the other side of the water.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The old woman stared at him in horror as she listened to his proposal. Other
+people had tried to steal fire before, and few indeed had come back with their
+lives; but as, contrary to all her expectations, he had managed to catch such a
+number of fish, she thought that perhaps there was some magic about him which
+she did not know of, and did not try to hinder him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the fish were all taken out, he fetched the net which he had laid out to
+dry, folded it up very small, and ran down to the river, hoping that he might
+find a place narrow enough for him to jump over; but he soon saw that it was
+too wide for even the best jumper in the world. For a few moments he stood
+there, wondering what was to be done, then there darted into his head some
+words of a spell which he had once heard a wizard use, while drinking from the
+river. He repeated them, as well as he could remember, and waited to see what
+would happen. In five minutes such a grunting and a puffing was heard, and
+columns of water rose into the air, though he could not tell what had made
+them. Then round the bend of the stream came fifteen huge whales, which he
+ordered to place themselves heads to tails, like stepping stones, so that he
+could jump from one to the other till he landed on the opposite shore. Directly
+he got there he told the whales that he did not need them any more, and sat
+down in the sand to rest.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Unluckily some children who were playing about caught sight of him, and one of
+them, stealing softly up behind him, laid tight hold of his ears. The hare, who
+had been watching the whales as they sailed down the river, gave a violent
+start, and struggled to get away; but the boy held on tight, and ran back home,
+as fast as he could go.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Throw it in the pot,” said the old woman, as soon as he had told his story;
+“put it in that basket, and as soon as the water boils in the pot we will hang
+it over the fire!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Better kill it first,” said the old man; and the hare listened, horribly
+frightened, but still looking secretly to see if there was no hole through
+which he could escape, if he had a chance of doing so. Yes, there was one,
+right in the top of the tent, so, shaking himself, as if with fright, he let
+the end of his net unroll itself a little.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I wish that a spark of fire would fall on my net,” whispered he; and the next
+minute a great log fell forward into the midst of the tent, causing every one
+to spring backwards. The sparks were scattered in every direction, and one fell
+on the net, making a little blaze. In an instant the hare had leaped through
+the hole, and was racing towards the river, with men, women, and children after
+him. There was no time to call back the whales, so, holding the net tight in
+his mouth, he wished himself across the river. Then he jumped high into the
+air, and landed safe on the other side, and after turning round to be sure that
+there was no chance of anyone pursuing him, trotted happily home to his
+grandmother.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Didn’t I tell you I would bring you fire?” said he, holding up his net, which
+was now burning briskly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But how did you cross the water?” inquired the old woman.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I just jumped!” said he. And his grandmother asked him no more questions,
+for she saw that he was wiser than she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[“Indian Folk Tales.” Bureau of Ethnology.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap08"></a>
+The Turtle and His Bride</h2>
+
+<p>
+There was once a turtle who lived among a great many people of different kinds,
+in a large camp near a big river which was born right up amongst the snows, and
+flowed straight away south till it reached a sea where the water was always
+hot.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+There were many other turtles in the camp, and this turtle was kind and
+pleasant to them all, but he did not care for any of them very much, and felt
+rather lonely.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last he built himself a hut, and filled it with skins for seats, and made it
+as comfortable as any hut for miles round; and when it was quite finished he
+looked about among the young women to see which of them he should ask to be his
+wife.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It took him some time to make up his mind, for no turtle likes being hurried,
+but at length he found one girl who seemed prettier and more industrious than
+the rest, and one day he entered her home, and said: “Will you marry me?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The young woman was so surprised at this question that she dropped the beaded
+slipper she was making, and stared at the turtle. She felt inclined to
+laugh—the idea was so absurd; but she was kind-hearted and polite, so she
+looked as grave as she could, and answered:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But how are you going to provide for a family? Why, when the camp moves, you
+will not even be able to keep up with the rest!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I can keep up with the best of them,” replied the turtle, tossing his head.
+But though he was very much offended he did not let the girl see it, and begged
+and, prayed her so hard to marry him that, at last, she consented, very
+unwillingly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You will have to wait till the spring, though,” she said; “I must make a great
+many slippers and dresses for myself, as I shall not have much time
+afterwards.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This did not please the turtle; but he knew it was no use talking, so all he
+answered was:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I shall go to war and take some captives, and I shall be away several months.
+And when I return I shall expect you to be ready to marry me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So he went back to his hut, and at once set about his preparations. The first
+thing he did was to call all his relations together, and ask them if they would
+come with him and make war on the people of a neighbouring village. The
+turtles, who were tired of doing nothing, agreed at once, and next day the
+whole tribe left the camp. The girl was standing at the door of her hut as they
+passed, and laughed out loud—they moved so slowly. Her lover, who was marching
+at the head, grew very angry at this, and cried out:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“In four days from now you will be weeping instead of laughing, because there
+will be hundreds of miles between you and me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“In four days,” replied the girl—who only promised to marry him in order to get
+rid of him—“in four days you will hardly be out of sight.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I did not mean four days, but four YEARS,” answered the turtle, hastily;
+“whatever happens I shall be back by then.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The army marched on, till one day, when they felt as if they must have got half
+round the earth, though they were scarcely four miles from the camp, they found
+a large tree lying across their path. They looked at it with dismay, and the
+oldest among them put their heads together to see what was to be done.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Can’t we manage to get past by the top?” asked one.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why, it would take us YEARS,” exclaimed another. “Just look at all those tall
+green branches, spreading in every direction. If once we got entangled in THEM,
+we should never get out again!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well then, let us go round by the bottom,” said a third.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“How are we to do that, when the roots have made a deep hole, and above that is
+a high bank?” replied a fourth. “No; the only way I can think of, is to burn a
+large hole in the trunk.” And this they did, but the trunk was very thick, and
+would not burn through.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is no use, we must give it up,” they agreed at last. “After all, nobody
+need ever know! We have been away such a long while that we might easily have
+had all sorts of adventures.” And so the whole company turned homewards again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They took even longer to go back than they had to come, for they were tired and
+footsore with their journey. When they drew near the camp they plucked up their
+courage, and began to sing a war-song. At this the villagers came flocking to
+see what spoils the turtles had won, but, as they approached, each turtle
+seized some one by the wrist, exclaiming: “You are our spoils; you are our
+prisoners!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now that I have got you I will keep you,” said the leader, who had happened to
+seize his betrothed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Everybody was naturally very angry at this behaviour, and the girl most of all,
+and in her secret heart she determined to have her revenge. But, just at
+present, the turtles were too strong, so the prisoners had to put on their
+smartest slippers and their brightest clothes, and dance a war dance while the
+turtles sang. They danced so long that it seemed as if they would never stop,
+till the turtle who was leading the singing suddenly broke into a loud chant:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Whoever comes here, will die, will die!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this all the dancers grew so frightened that they burst through the ring of
+their captors, and ran back to the village, the turtles following—very slowly.
+On the way the chief turtle met a man, who said to him:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That woman who was to have been your wife has married another man!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Is that true?” said the turtle. “Then I must see him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But as soon as the villager was out of sight the turtle stopped, and taking a
+bundle containing fringes and ornaments from his back, he hung them about him,
+so that they rattled as he walked. When he was quite close to the hut where the
+woman lived, he cried out:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Here I am to claim the woman who promised to be my wife.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, here is the turtle,” whispered the husband hurriedly; “what is to be done
+now?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Leave that to me; I will manage him,” replied the wife, and at that moment the
+turtle came in, and seized her by the wrist. “Come with me,” he said sternly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You broke your promise,” answered she. “You said you would be back soon, and
+it is more than a year since you went! How was I to know that you were alive?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At her words the husband took courage, and spoke hastily:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, you promised you would go to war and bring back some prisoners, and you
+have not done it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I DID go, and made many prisoners,” retorted the turtle angrily, drawing out
+his knife. “Look here, if she won’t be MY wife, she sha’n’t be YOURS. I will
+cut her in two; and you shall have one half, and I the other.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But half a woman is no use to me,” answered the man. “If you want her so much
+you had better take her.” And the turtle, followed by his relations, carried
+her off to his own hut.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the woman saw she would gain nothing by being sulky, so she pretended to be
+very glad to have got rid of her husband; but all the while she was trying to
+invent a plan to deliver herself from the turtle. At length she remembered that
+one of her friends had a large iron pot, and when the turtle had gone to his
+room to put away his fringes, she ran over to her neighbour’s and brought it
+back. Then she filled it with water and hung it over the fire to boil. It was
+just beginning to bubble and hiss when the turtle entered.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What are you doing there?” asked he, for he was always afraid of things that
+he did not understand.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Just warming some water,” she answered. “Do you know how to swim?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, of course I do. What a question! But what does it matter to you?” said
+the turtle, more suspicious than ever.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I only thought that after your long journey you might like to wash. The
+roads are so muddy, after the winter’s rains. I could rub your shell for you
+till it was bright and shining again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, I AM rather muddy. If one is fighting, you know, one cannot stop to pick
+one’s way. I should certainly be more comfortable if my back was washed.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The woman did not wait for him to change his mind. She caught him up by his
+shell and popped him straight into the pot, where he sank to the bottom, and
+died instantly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The other turtles, who were standing at the door, saw their leader disappear,
+and felt it was their duty as soldiers to follow him; and, springing into the
+pot, died too. All but one young turtle, who, frightened at not seeing any of
+his friends come out again, went as fast as he could to a clump of bushes, and
+from there made his way to the river. His only thought was to get away as far
+as possible from that dreadful hut; so he let the river carry him where it was
+going itself, and at last, one day, he found himself in the warm sea, where, if
+he is not dead, you may meet him still.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Bureau of Ethnology.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap09"></a>
+How Geirald The Coward Was Punished</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time there lived a poor knight who had a great many children, and
+found it very hard to get enough for them to eat. One day he sent his eldest
+son, Rosald, a brave and honest youth, to the neighbouring town to do some
+business, and here Rosald met a young man named Geirald, with whom he made
+friends.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now Geirald was the son of a rich man, who was proud of the boy, and had all
+his life allowed him to do whatever he fancied, and, luckily for the father, he
+was prudent and sensible, and did not waste money, as many other rich young men
+might have done. For some time he had set his heart on travelling into foreign
+countries, and after he had been talking for a little while to Rosald, he asked
+if his new friend would be his companion on his journey.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“There is nothing I should like better,” answered Rosald, shaking his head
+sorrowfully; “but my father is very poor, and he could never give me the
+money.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, if that is your only difficulty, it is all right,” cried Geirald. “My
+father has more money than he knows what to do with, and he will give me as
+much as I want for both of us; only, there is one thing you must promise me,
+Rosald, that, supposing we have any adventures, you will let the honour and
+glory of them fall to me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, of course, that is only fair,” answered Rosald, who never cared about
+putting himself forward. “But I cannot go without telling my parents. I am sure
+they will think me lucky to get such a chance.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As soon as the business was finished, Rosald hastened home. His parents were
+delighted to hear of his good fortune, and his father gave him his own sword,
+which was growing rusty for want of use, while his mother saw that his leather
+jerkin was in order.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Be sure you keep the promise you made to Geirald,” said she, as she bade him
+good-bye, “and, come what may, see that you never betray him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Full of joy Rosald rode off, and the next day he and Geirald started off to
+seek adventures. To their disappointment their own land was so well governed
+that nothing out of the common was very likely to happen, but directly they
+crossed the border into another kingdom all seemed lawlessness and confusion.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They had not gone very far, when, riding across a mountain, they caught a
+glimpse of several armed men hiding amongst some trees in their path, and
+remembered suddenly some talk they had heard of a band of twelve robbers who
+lay in wait for rich travellers. The robbers were more like savage beasts than
+men, and lived somewhere at the top of the mountain in caves and holes in the
+ground. They were all called “Hankur,” and were distinguished one from another
+by the name of a colour—blue, grey, red, and so on, except their chief, who was
+known as Hankur the Tall. All this and more rushed into the minds of the two
+young men as they saw the flash of their swords in the moonlight.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is impossible to fight them—they are twelve to two,” whispered Geirald,
+stopping his horse in the path. “We had much better ride back and take the
+lower road. It would be stupid to throw away our lives like this.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, we can’t turn back,” answered Rosald, “we should be ashamed to look anyone
+in the face again! And, besides, it is a grand opportunity to show what we are
+made of. Let us tie up our horses here, and climb up the rocks so that we can
+roll stones down on them.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, we might try that, and then we shall always have our horses,” said
+Geirald. So they went up the rocks silently and carefully.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The robbers were lying all ready, expecting every moment to see their victims
+coming round the corner a few yards away, when a shower of huge stones fell on
+their heads, killing half the band. The others sprang up the rock, but as they
+reached the top the sword of Rosald swung round, and one man after another
+rolled down into the valley. At last the chief managed to spring up, and,
+grasping Rosald by the waist, flung away his sword, and the two fought
+desperately, their bodies swaying always nearer the edge. It seemed as if
+Rosald, being the smaller of the two, MUST fall over, when, with his left hand,
+he drew the robber’s sword out of its sheath and plunged it into his heart.
+Then he took from the dead man a beautiful ring set with a large stone, and put
+it on his own finger.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The fame of this wonderful deed soon spread through the country, and people
+would often stop Geirald’s horse, and ask leave to see the robber’s ring, which
+was said to have been stolen from the father of the reigning king. And Geirald
+showed them the ring with pride, and listened to their words of praise, and no
+one would ever have guessed anyone else had destroyed the robbers.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In a few days they left the kingdom and rode on to another, where they thought
+they would stop through the remainder of the winter, for Geirald liked to be
+comfortable, and did not care about travelling through ice and snow. But the
+king would only grant them leave to stop on condition that, before the winter
+was ended, they should give him some fresh proof of the courage of which he had
+heard so much. Rosald’s heart was glad at the king’s message, and as for
+Geirald, he felt that as long as Rosald was there all would go well. So they
+both bowed low and replied that it was the king’s place to command and theirs
+to obey.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, then,” said his Majesty, “this is what I want you to do: In the
+north-east part of my kingdom there dwells a giant, who has an iron staff
+twenty yards long, and he is so quick in using it, that even fifty knights have
+no chance against him. The bravest and strongest young men of my court have
+fallen under the blows of that staff; but, as you overcame the twelve robbers
+so easily, I feel that I have reason to hope that you may be able to conquer
+the giant. In three days from this you will set out.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“We will be ready, your Majesty,” answered Rosald; but Geirald remained silent.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“How can we possibly fight against a giant that has killed fifty knights?”
+cried Geirald, when they were outside the castle. “The king only wants to get
+rid of us! He won’t think about us for the next three days—that is one
+comfort—so we shall have plenty of time to cross the borders of the kingdom and
+be out of reach.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“We mayn’t be able to kill the giant, but we certainly can’t run away till we
+have tried,” answered Rosald. “Besides, think how glorious it will be if we DO
+manage to kill him! I know what sort of weapon I shall use. Come with me now,
+and I will see about it.” And, taking his friend by the arm, he led him into a
+shop where he bought a huge lump of solid iron, so big that they could hardly
+lift it between them. However, they just managed to carry it to a blacksmith’s
+where Rosald directed that it should be beaten into a thick club, with a sharp
+spike at one end. When this was done to his liking he took it home under his
+arm.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Very early on the third morning the two young men started on their journey, and
+on the fourth day they reached the giant’s cave before he was out of bed.
+Hearing the sound of footsteps, the giant got up and went to the entrance to
+see who was coming, and Rosald, expecting something of the sort, struck him
+such a blow on the forehead that he fell to the ground. Then, before he could
+rise to his feet again, Rosald drew out his sword and cut off his head.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It was not so difficult after all, you see,” he said, turning to Geirald. And
+placing the giant’s head in a leathern wallet which was slung over his back,
+they began their journey to the castle.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As they drew near the gates, Rosald took the head from the wallet and handed it
+to Geirald, whom he followed into the king’s presence.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The giant will trouble you no more,” said Geirald, holding out the head. And
+the king fell on his neck and kissed him, and cried joyfully that he was the
+“bravest knight in all the world, and that a feast should be made for him and
+Rosald, and that the great deed should be proclaimed throughout the kingdom.”
+And Geirald’s heart swelled with pride, and he almost forgot that it was Rosald
+and not he, who had slain the giant.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By-and-by a whisper went round that a beautiful lady who lived in the castle
+would be present at the feast, with twenty-four lovely maidens, her attendants.
+The lady was the queen of her own country, but as her father and mother had
+died when she was a little girl, she had been left in the care of this king who
+was her uncle.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+She was now old enough to govern her own kingdom, but her subjects did not like
+being ruled by a woman, and said that she must find a husband to help her in
+managing her affairs. Prince after prince had offered himself, but the young
+queen would have nothing to say to any of them, and at last told her ministers
+that if she was to have a husband at all she must choose him for herself, as
+she would certainly not marry any of those whom they had selected for her. The
+ministers replied that in that case she had better manage her kingdom alone,
+and the queen, who knew nothing about business, got things into such a
+confusion that at last she threw them up altogether, and went off to her uncle.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now when she heard how the two young men had slain the giant, her heart was
+filled with admiration of their courage, and she declared that if a feast was
+held she would certainly be present at it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And so she was; and when the feast was over she asked the king, her guardian,
+if he would allow the two heroes who had killed the robbers and slain the giant
+to fight a tourney the next day with one of her pages. The king gladly gave his
+consent, and ordered the lists to be made ready, never doubting that two great
+champions would be eager for such a chance of adding to their fame. Little did
+he guess that Geirald had done all he could to persuade Rosald to steal
+secretly out of the castle during the night, “for,” said he, “I don’t believe
+they are pages at all, but well-proved knights, and how can we, so young and
+untried, stand up against them?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The honour will be all the higher if we gain the day,” answered Rosald; but
+Geirald would listen to nothing, and only declared that he did not care about
+honour, and would rather be alive than have every honour in the world heaped
+upon him. Go he would, and as Rosald had sworn to give him his company, he must
+come with him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Rosald was much grieved when he heard these words, but he knew that it was
+useless attempting to persuade Geirald, and turned his thoughts to forming some
+plan to prevent this disgraceful flight. Suddenly his face brightened. “Let us
+change clothes,” he said, “and I will do the fighting, while you shall get the
+glory. Nobody will ever know.” And to this Geirald readily consented.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Whether Geirald was right or not in thinking that the so-called page was really
+a well-proved knight, it is certain that Rosald’s task was a very hard one.
+Three times they came together with a crash which made their horses reel; once
+Rosald knocked the helmet off his foe, and received in return such a blow that
+he staggered in his saddle. Shouts went up from the lookers-on, as first one
+and then the other seemed gaining the victory; but at length Rosald planted his
+spear in the armour which covered his adversary’s breast and bore him steadily
+backward. “Unhorsed! unhorsed!” cried the people; and Rosald then himself
+dismounted and helped his adversary to rise.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In the confusion that followed it was easy for Rosald to slip away and return
+Geirald his proper clothes. And in these, torn and dusty with the fight,
+Geirald answered the king’s summons to come before him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You have done what I expected you to do,” said he, “and now, choose your
+reward.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Grant me, sire, the hand of the queen, your niece,” replied the young man,
+bowing low, “and I will defend her kingdom against all her enemies.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“She could choose no better husband,” said the king, “and if she consents I
+do.” And he turned towards the queen, who had not been present during the
+fight, but had just slipped into a seat by his right hand. Now the queen’s eyes
+were very sharp, and it seemed to her that the man who stood before her, tall
+and handsome though he might be, was different in many slight ways, and in one
+in particular, from the man who had fought the tourney. How there could be any
+trickery she could not understand, and why the real victor should be willing to
+give up his prize to another was still stranger; but something in her heart
+warned her to be careful. She answered: “You may be satisfied, uncle, but I am
+not. One more proof I must have; let the two young men now fight against each
+other. The man I marry must be the man who killed the robbers and the giant,
+and overcame my page.” Geirald’s face grew pale as he heard these words. He
+knew there was no escape from him now, though he did not doubt for one moment
+that Rosald would keep his compact loyally to the last. But how would it be
+possible that even Rosald should deceive the watchful eyes of the king and his
+court, and still more those of the young queen whom he felt uneasily had
+suspected him from the first?
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The tourney was fought, and in spite of Geirald’s fears Rosald managed to hang
+back to make attacks which were never meant to succeed, and to allow strokes
+which he could easily have parried to attain their end. At length, after a
+great show of resistance, he fell heavily to the ground. And as he fell he knew
+that it was not alone the glory that was his rightfully which he gave up, but
+the hand of the queen that was more precious still.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But Geirald did not even wait to see if he was wounded; he went straight to the
+wall where the royal banner waved and claimed the reward which was now his.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The crowd of watchers turned towards the queen, expecting to see her stoop and
+give some token to the victor. Instead, to the surprise of everyone, she merely
+smiled gracefully, and said that before she bestowed her hand one more test
+must be imposed, but this should be the last. The final tourney should be
+fought; Geirald and Rosald should meet singly two knights of the king’s court,
+and he who could unhorse his foe should be master of herself and of her
+kingdom. The combat was fixed to take place at ten o’clock the following day.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All night long Geirald walked about his room, not daring to face the fight that
+lay in front of him, and trying with all his might to discover some means of
+escaping it. All night long he moved restlessly from door to window; and when
+the trumpets sounded, and the combatants rode into the field, he alone was
+missing. The king sent messengers to see what had become of him, and he was
+found, trembling with fear, hiding under his bed. After that there was no need
+of any further proof. The combat was declared unnecessary, and the queen
+pronounced herself quite satisfied, and ready to accept Rosald as her husband.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You forgot one thing,” she said, when they were alone. “I recognized my
+father’s ring which Hankur the Tall had stolen, on the finger of your right
+hand, and I knew that it was you and not Geirald who had slain the robber band.
+I was the page who fought you, and again I saw the ring on your finger, though
+it was absent from his when he stood before me to claim the prize. That was why
+I ordered the combat between you, though your faith to your word prevented my
+plan being successful, and I had to try another. The man who keeps his promise
+at all costs to himself is the man I can trust, both for myself and for my
+people.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So they were married, and returned to their own kingdom, which they ruled well
+and happily. And many years after a poor beggar knocked at the palace gates and
+asked for money, for the sake of days gone by—and this was Geirald.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[From Neuislandischem Volksmärchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap10"></a>
+Hábogi</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time there lived two peasants who had three daughters, and, as
+generally happens, the youngest was the most beautiful and the best tempered,
+and when her sisters wanted to go out she was always ready to stay at home and
+do their work.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Years passed quickly with the whole family, and one day the parents suddenly
+perceived that all three girls were grown up, and that very soon they would be
+thinking of marriage.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Have you decided what your husband’s name is to be?” said the father,
+laughingly, to his eldest daughter, one evening when they were all sitting at
+the door of their cottage. “You know that is a very important point!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes; I will never wed any man who is not called Sigmund,” answered she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, it is lucky for you that there are a great many Sigmunds in this part of
+the world,” replied her father, “so that you can take your choice! And what do
+YOU say?” he added, turning to the second.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I think that there is no name so beautiful as Sigurd,” cried she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Then you won’t be an old maid either,” answered he. “There are seven Sigurds
+in the next village alone! And you, Helga?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Helga, who was still the prettiest of the three, looked up. She also had her
+favourite name, but, just as she was going to say it, she seemed to hear a
+voice whisper: “Marry no one who is not called Hábogi.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The girl had never heard of such a name, and did not like it, so she determined
+to pay no attention; but as she opened her mouth to tell her father that her
+husband must be called Njal, she found herself answering instead: “If I do
+marry it will be to no one except Hábogi.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Who IS Hábogi?” asked her father and sisters; “We never heard of such a
+person.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“All I can tell you is that he will be my husband, if ever I have one,”
+returned Helga; and that was all she would say.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Before very long the young men who lived in the neighbouring villages or on the
+sides of the mountains, had heard of this talk of the three girls, and Sigmunds
+and Sigurds in scores came to visit the little cottage. There were other young
+men too, who bore different names, though not one of them was called “Hábogi,”
+and these thought that they might perhaps gain the heart of the youngest. But
+though there was more than one “Njal” amongst them, Helga’s eyes seemed always
+turned another way.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At length the two elder sisters made their choice from out of the Sigurds and
+the Sigmunds, and it was decided that both weddings should take place at the
+same time. Invitations were sent out to the friends and relations, and when, on
+the morning of the great day, they were all assembled, a rough, coarse old
+peasant left the crowd and came up to the brides’ father.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“My name is Hábogi, and Helga must be my wife,” was all he said. And though
+Helga stood pale and trembling with surprise, she did not try to run away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I cannot talk of such things just now,” answered the father, who could not
+bear the thought of giving his favourite daughter to this horrible old man, and
+hoped, by putting it off, that something might happen. But the sisters, who had
+always been rather jealous of Helga, were secretly pleased that their
+bridegrooms should outshine hers.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the feast was over, Hábogi led up a beautiful horse from a field where he
+had left it to graze, and bade Helga jump up on its splendid saddle, all
+embroidered in scarlet and gold. “You shall come back again,” said he; “but now
+you must see the house that you are to live in.” And though Helga was very
+unwilling to go, something inside her forced her to obey.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The old man settled her comfortably, then sprang up in front of her as easily
+as if he had been a boy, and, shaking the reins, they were soon out of sight.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After some miles they rode through a meadow with grass so green that Helga’s
+eyes felt quite dazzled; and feeding on the grass were a quantity of large fat
+sheep, with the curliest and whitest wool in the world.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What lovely sheep! whose are they?” cried Helga.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Your Hábogi’s,” answered he, “all that you see belongs to him; but the finest
+sheep in the whole herd, which has little golden bells hanging between its
+horns, you shall have for yourself.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This pleased Helga very much, for she had never had anything of her own; and
+she smiled quite happily as she thanked Hábogi for his present.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They soon left the sheep behind them, and entered a large field with a river
+running through it, where a number of beautiful grey cows were standing by a
+gate waiting for a milk-maid to come and milk them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, what lovely cows!” cried Helga again; “I am sure their milk must be
+sweeter than any other cows. How I should like to have some! I wonder to whom
+they belong?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“To your Hábogi,” replied he; “and some day you shall have as much milk as you
+like, but we cannot stop now. Do you see that big grey one, with the silver
+bells between her horns? That is to be yours, and you can have her milked every
+morning the moment you wake.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And Helga’s eyes shone, and though she did not say anything, she thought that
+she would learn to milk the cow herself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+A mile further on they came to a wide common, with short, springy turf, where
+horses of all colours, with skins of satin, were kicking up their heels in
+play. The sight of them so delighted Helga that she nearly sprang from her
+saddle with a shriek of joy.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Whose are they?” Oh! whose are they?” she asked. “How happy any man must be
+who is the master of such lovely creatures!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“They are your Hábogi’s,” replied he, “and the one which you think the most
+beautiful of all you shall have for yourself, and learn to ride him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this Helga quite forgot the sheep and the cow.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“A horse of my own!” said she. “Oh, stop one moment, and let me see which I
+will choose. The white one? No. The chestnut? No. I think, after all, I like
+the coal-black one best, with the little white star on his forehead. Oh, do
+stop, just for a minute.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But Hábogi would not stop or listen. “When you are married you will have plenty
+of time to choose one,” was all he answered, and they rode on two or three
+miles further.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At length Hábogi drew rein before a small house, very ugly and mean-looking,
+and that seemed on the point of tumbling to pieces.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“This is my house, and is to be yours,” said Hábogi, as he jumped down and held
+out his arms to lift Helga from the horse. The girl’s heart sank a little, as
+she thought that the man who possessed such wonderful sheep, and cows, and
+horses, might have built himself a prettier place to live in; but she did not
+say so. And, taking her arm, he led her up the steps.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But when she got inside, she stood quite bewildered at the beauty of all around
+her. None of her friends owned such things, not even the miller, who was the
+richest man she knew. There were carpets everywhere, thick and soft, and of
+deep rich colours; and the cushions were of silk, and made you sleepy even to
+look at them; and curious little figures in china were scattered about. Helga
+felt as if it would take her all her life to see everything properly, and it
+only seemed a second since she had entered the house, when Hábogi came up to
+her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I must begin the preparations for our wedding at once,” he said; “but my
+foster-brother will take you home, as I promised. In three days he will bring
+you back here, with your parents and sisters, and any guests you may invite, in
+your company. By that time the feast will be ready.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Helga had so much to think about, that the ride home appeared very short. Her
+father and mother were delighted to see her, as they did not feel sure that so
+ugly and cross-looking a man as Hábogi might not have played her some cruel
+trick. And after they had given her some supper they begged her to tell them
+all she had done. But Helga only told them that they should see for themselves
+on the third day, when they would come to her wedding.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was very early in the morning when the party set out, and Helga’s two
+sisters grew green with envy as they passed the flocks of sheep, and cows, and
+horses, and heard that the best of each was given to Helga herself; but when
+they caught sight of the poor little house which was to be her home their
+hearts grew light again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I should be ashamed of living in such a place,” whispered each to the other;
+and the eldest sister spoke of the carved stone over HER doorway, and the
+second boasted of the number of rooms SHE had. But the moment they went inside
+they were struck dumb with rage at the splendour of everything, and their faces
+grew white and cold with fury when they saw the dress which Hábogi had prepared
+for his bride—a dress that glittered like sunbeams dancing upon ice.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“She SHALL not look so much finer than us,” they cried passionately to each
+other as soon as they were alone; and when night came they stole out of their
+rooms, and taking out the wedding-dress, they laid it in the ash-pit, and
+heaped ashes upon it. But Hábogi, who knew a little magic, and had guessed what
+they would do, changed the ashes into roses, and cast a spell over the sisters,
+so that they could not leave the spot for a whole day, and every one who passed
+by mocked at them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The next morning when they all awoke the ugly tumble-down house had
+disappeared, and in its place stood a splendid palace. The guests’ eyes sought
+in vain for the bridegroom, but could only see a handsome young man, with a
+coat of blue velvet and silver and a gold crown upon his head.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Who is that?” they asked Helga.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That is my Hábogi,” said she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[From Neuislandischem Volksmärchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap11"></a>
+How the Little Brother Set Free His Big Brothers</h2>
+
+<p>
+In a small hut, right in the middle of the forest, lived a man, his wife, three
+sons and a daughter. For some reason, all the animals seemed to have left that
+part of the country, and food grew very scarce; so, one morning, after a night
+of snow, when the tracks of beasts might be easily seen, the three boys started
+off to hunt.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They kept together for some time, till they reached a place where the path they
+had been following split into two, and one of the brothers called his dog and
+went to the left, while the others took the trail to the right. These had not
+gone far when their dogs scented a bear, and drove him out from the thicket.
+The bear ran across a clearing, and the elder brother managed to place an arrow
+right in his head.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They both took up the bear, and carried it towards home, meeting the third at
+the spot where they had parted from him. When they reached home they threw the
+bear down on the floor of the hut saying,
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Father, here is a bear which we killed; now we can have some dinner.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the father, who was in a bad temper, only said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“When I was a young man we used to get two bears in one day.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The sons were rather disappointed at hearing this, and though there was plenty
+of meat to last for two or three days, they started off early in the morning
+down the same trail that they had followed before. As they drew near the fork a
+bear suddenly ran out from behind a tree, and took the path on the right. The
+two elder boys and their dogs pursued him, and soon the second son, who was
+also a good shot, killed him instantly with an arrow. At the fork of the trail,
+on their way home, they met the youngest, who had taken the left-hand road, and
+had shot a bear for himself. But when they threw the two bears triumphantly on
+the floor of the hut their father hardly looked at them, and only said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“When I was a young man I used to get three bears in one day.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The next day they were luckier than before, and brought back three bears, on
+which their father told them that HE had always killed four. However, that did
+not prevent him from skinning the bears and cooking them in a way of his own,
+which he thought very good, and they all ate an excellent supper.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now these bears were the servants of the great bear chief who lived in a high
+mountain a long way off. And every time a bear was killed his shadow returned
+to the house of the bear chief, with the marks of his wounds plainly to bee
+seen by the rest.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The chief was furious at the number of bears the hunters had killed, and
+determined that he would find some way of destroying them. So he called another
+of his servants, and said to him:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Go to the thicket near the fork, where the boys killed your brothers, and
+directly they or the dogs see you return here as fast as ever you can. The
+mountain will open to let you in, and the hunters will follow you. Then I shall
+have them in my power, and be able to revenge myself.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The servant bowed low, and started at once for the fork, where he hid himself
+in the bushes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By-and-by the boys came in sight, but this time there were only two of them, as
+the youngest had stayed at home. The air was warm and damp, and the snow soft
+and slushy, and the elder brother’s bowstring hung loose, while the bow of the
+younger caught in a tree and snapped in half. At that moment the dogs began to
+bark loudly, and the bear rushed out of the thicket and set off in the
+direction of the mountain. Without thinking that they had nothing to defend
+themselves with, should the bear turn and attack them, the boys gave chase. The
+bear, who knew quite well that he could not be shot, sometimes slackened his
+pace and let the dogs get quite close; and in this way the elder son reached
+the mountain without observing it, while his brother, who had hurt his foot,
+was still far behind.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As he ran up, the mountain opened to admit the bear, and the boy, who was close
+on his heels, rushed in after him, and did not know where he was till he saw
+bears sitting on every side of him, holding a council. The animal he had been
+chasing sank panting in their midst, and the boy, very much frightened, stood
+still, letting his bow fall to the ground.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why are you trying to kill all my servants?” asked the chief. “Look round and
+see their shades, with arrows sticking in them. It was I who told the bear
+to-day how he was to lure you into my power. I shall take care that you shall
+not hurt my people any more, because you will become a bear yourself.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this moment the second brother came up—for the mountain had been left open
+on purpose to tempt him also—and cried out breathlessly: “Don’t you see that
+the bear is lying close to you? Why don’t you shoot him?” And, without waiting
+for a reply, pressed forward to drive his arrow into the heart of the bear. But
+the elder one caught his raised arm, and whispered: “Be quiet! can’t you tell
+where you are?” Then the boy looked up and saw the angry bears about him. On
+the one side were the servants of the chief, and on the other the servants of
+the chief’s sister, who was sorry for the two youths, and begged that their
+lives might be spared. The chief answered that he would not kill them, but only
+cast a spell over them, by which their heads and bodies should remain as they
+were, but their arms and legs should change into those of a bear, so that they
+would go on all fours for the rest of their lives. And, stooping over a spring
+of water, he dipped a handful of moss in it and rubbed it over the arms and
+legs of the boys. In an instant the transformation took place, and two
+creatures, neither beast nor human stood before the chief.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the bear chief of course knew that the boys’ father would seek for his sons
+when they did not return home, so he sent another of his servants to the
+hiding-place at the fork of the trail to see what would happen. He had not
+waited long, when the father came in sight, stooping as he went to look for his
+sons’ tracks in the snow. When he saw the marks of snow-shoes along the path on
+the right he was filled with joy, not knowing that the servant had made some
+fresh tracks on purpose to mislead him; and he hastened forward so fast that he
+fell headlong into a pit, where the bear was sitting. Before he could pick
+himself up the bear had quietly broken his neck, and, hiding the body under the
+snow, sat down to see if anyone else would pass that way.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Meanwhile the mother at home was wondering what had become of her two sons, and
+as the hours went on, and their father never returned, she made up her mind to
+go and look for him. The youngest boy begged her to let him undertake the
+search, but she would not hear of it, and told him he must stay at home and
+take care of his sister. So, slipping on her snow-shoes, she started on her
+way.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As no fresh snow had fallen, the trail was quite easy to find, and she walked
+straight on, till it led her up to the pit where the bear was waiting for her.
+He grasped her as she fell and broke her neck, after which he laid her in the
+snow beside her husband, and went back to tell the bear chief.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Hour after hour dragged heavily by in the forest hut, and at last the brother
+and sister felt quite sure that in some way or other all the rest of the family
+had perished. Day after day the boy climbed to the top of a tall tree near the
+house, and sat there till he was almost frozen, looking on all sides through
+the forest openings, hoping that he might see someone coming along. Very soon
+all the food in the house was eaten, and he knew he would have to go out and
+hunt for more. Besides, he wished to seek for his parents.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The little girl did not like being left alone in the hut, and cried bitterly;
+but her brother told her that there was no use sitting down quietly to starve,
+and that whether he found any game or not he would certainly be back before the
+following night. Then he cut himself some arrows, each from a different tree,
+and winged with the feathers of four different birds. He then made himself a
+bow, very light and strong, and got down his snow-shoes. All this took some
+time, and he could not start that day, but early next morning he called his
+little dog Redmouth, whom he kept in a box, and set out.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After he had followed the trail for a great distance he grew very tired, and
+sat upon the branch of a tree to rest. But Redmouth barked so furiously that
+the boy thought that perhaps his parents might have been killed under its
+branches, and stepping back, shot one of his arrows at the root of the tree.
+Whereupon a noise like thunder shook it from top to bottom, fire broke out, and
+in a few minutes a little heap of ashes lay in the place where it had stood.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Not knowing quite what to make of it all, the boy continued on the trail, and
+went down the right-hand fork till he came to the clump of bushes where the
+bears used to hide.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now, as was plain by his being able to change the shape of the two brothers,
+the bear chief knew a good deal of magic, and he was quite aware that the
+little boy was following the trail, and he sent a very small but clever bear
+servant to wait for him in the bushes and to try to tempt him into the
+mountain. But somehow his spells could not have worked properly that day, as
+the bear chief did not know that Redmouth had gone with his master, or he would
+have been more careful. For the moment the dog ran round the bushes barking
+loudly, the little bear servant rushed out in a fright, and set out for the
+mountains as fast as he could.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The dog followed the bear, and the boy followed the dog, until the mountain,
+the house of the great bear chief, came in sight. But along the road the snow
+was so wet and heavy that the boy could hardly get along, and then the thong of
+his snow-shoes broke, and he had to stop and mend it, so that the bear and the
+dog got so far ahead that he could scarcely hear the barking. When the strap
+was firm again the boy spoke to his snow-shoes and said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now you must go as fast as you can, or, if not, I shall lose the dog as well
+as the bear.” And the snow-shoes sang in answer that they would run like the
+wind.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As he came along, the bear chief’s sister was looking out of the window, and
+took pity on this little brother, as she had on the two elder ones, and waited
+to see what the boy would do, when he found that the bear servant and the dog
+had already entered the mountain.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The little brother was certainly very much puzzled at not seeing anything of
+either of the animals, which had vanished suddenly out of his sight. He paused
+for an instant to think what he should do next, and while he did so he fancied
+he heard Redmouth’s voice on the opposite side of the mountain. With great
+difficulty he scrambled over steep rocks, and forced a path through tangled
+thickets; but when he reached the other side the sound appeared to start from
+the place from which he had come. Then he had to go all the way back again, and
+at the very top, where he stopped to rest, the barking was directly beneath
+him, and he knew in an instant where he was and what had happened.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Let my dog out at once, bear chief!” cried he. “If you do not, I shall destroy
+your palace.” But the bear chief only laughed, and said nothing. The boy was
+very angry at his silence, and aiming one of his arrows at the bottom of the
+mountain, shot straight through it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As the arrow touched the ground a rumbling was heard, and with a roar a fire
+broke out which seemed to split the whole mountain into pieces. The bear chief
+and all his servants were burnt up in the flames, but his sister and all that
+belonged to her were spared because she had tried to save the two elder boys
+from punishment.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As soon as the fire had burnt itself out the little hunter entered what was
+left of the mountain, and the first thing he saw was his two brothers—half
+bear, half boy.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, help us! help us!” cried they, standing on their hind legs as they spoke,
+and stretching out their fore-paws to him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But how am I to help you?” asked the little brother, almost weeping. “I can
+kill people, and destroy trees and mountains, but I have no power over men.”
+And the two elder brothers came up and put their paws on his shoulders, and
+they all three wept together.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The heart of the bear chief’s sister was moved when she saw their misery, and
+she came gently up behind, and whispered:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Little boy, gather some moss from the spring over there, and let your brothers
+smell it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+With a bound all three were at the spring, and as the youngest plucked a
+handful of wet moss, the two others sniffed at it with all their might. Then
+the bearskin fell away from them, and they stood upright once more.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“How can we thank you? how can we thank you?” they stammered, hardly able to
+speak; and fell at her feet in gratitude. But the bear’s sister only smiled,
+and bade them go home and look after the little girl, who had no one else to
+protect her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And this the boys did, and took such good care of their sister that, as she was
+very small, she soon forgot that she had ever had a father and mother.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[From the Bureau of Ethnology, U.S.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap12"></a>
+The Sacred Milk of Koumongoé</h2>
+
+<p>
+Far way, in a very hot country, there once lived a man and woman who had two
+children, a son named Koane and a daughter called Thakane.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Early in the morning and late in the evenings the parents worked hard in the
+fields, resting, when the sun was high, under the shade of some tree. While
+they were absent the little girl kept house alone, for her brother always got
+up before the dawn, when the air was fresh and cool, and drove out the cattle
+to the sweetest patches of grass he could find.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day, when Koane had slept later than usual, his father and mother went to
+their work before him, and there was only Thakane to be seen busy making the
+bread for supper.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Thakane,” he said, “I am thirsty. Give me a drink from the tree Koumongoé,
+which has the best milk in the world.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, Koane,” cried his sister, “you know that we are forbidden to touch that
+tree. What would father say when he came home? For he would be sure to know.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Nonsense,” replied Koane, “there is so much milk in Koumongoé that he will
+never miss a little. If you won’t give it to me, I sha’n’t take the cattle out.
+They will just have to stay all day in the hut, and you know that they will
+starve.” And he turned from her in a rage, and sat down in the corner.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After a while Thakane said to him: “It is getting hot, had you better drive out
+the cattle now?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But Koane only answered sulkily: “I told you I am not going to drive them out
+at all. If I have to do without milk, they shall do without grass.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Thakane did not know what to do. She was afraid to disobey her parents, who
+would most likely beat her, yet the beasts would be sure to suffer if they were
+kept in, and she would perhaps be beaten for that too. So at last she took an
+axe and a tiny earthen bowl, she cut a very small hole in the side of
+Koumongoé, and out gushed enough milk to fill the bowl.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Here is the milk you wanted,” said she, going up to Koane, who was still
+sulking in his corner.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What is the use of that?” grumbled Koane; “why, there is not enough to drown a
+fly. Go and get me three times as much!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Trembling with fright, Thakane returned to the tree, and struck it a sharp blow
+with the axe. In an instant there poured forth such a stream of milk that it
+ran like a river into the hut.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Koane! Koane!” cried she, “come and help me to plug up the hole. There will be
+no milk left for our father and mother.” But Koane could not stop it any more
+than Thakane, and soon the milk was flowing through the hut downhill towards
+their parents in the fields below.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The man saw a white stream a long way off, and guessed what had happened.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Wife, wife,” he called loudly to the woman, who was working at a little
+distance: “Do you see Koumongoé running fast down the hill? That is some
+mischief of the children’s, I am sure. I must go home and find out what is the
+matter.” And they both threw down their hoes and hurried to the side of
+Koumongoé.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Kneeling on the grass, the man and his wife made a cup of their hands and drank
+the milk from it. And no sooner had they done this, than Koumongoé flowed back
+again up the hill, and entered the hut.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Thakane,” said the parents, severely, when they reached home panting from the
+heat of the sun, “what have you been doing? Why did Koumongoé come to us in the
+fields instead of staying in the garden?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It was Koane’s fault,” answered Thakane. “He would not take the cattle to feed
+until he drank some of the milk from Koumongoé. So, as I did not know what else
+to do, I gave it to him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The father listened to Thakane’s words, but made no answer. Instead, he went
+outside and brought in two sheepskins, which he stained red and sent for a
+blacksmith to forge some iron rings. The rings were then passed over Thakane’s
+arms and legs and neck, and the skins fastened on her before and behind. When
+all was ready, the man sent for his servants and said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am going to get rid of Thakane.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Get rid of your only daughter?” they answered, in surprise. “But why?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Because she has eaten what she ought not to have eaten. She has touched the
+sacred tree which belongs to her mother and me alone.” And, turning his back,
+he called to Thakane to follow him, and they went down the road which led to
+the dwelling of an ogre.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They were passing along some fields where the corn was ripening, when a rabbit
+suddenly sprang out at their feet, and standing on its hind legs, it sang:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Why do you give to the ogre Your child, so fair, so fair?
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You had better ask her,” replied the man, “she is old enough to give you an
+answer.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then, in her turn, Thakane sang:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+I gave Koumongoé to Koane, Koumongoé to the keeper of beasts; For without
+Koumongoé they could not go to the meadows: Without Koumongoé they would starve
+in the hut; That was why I gave him the Koumongoé of my father.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And when the rabbit heard that, he cried: “Wretched man! it is you whom the
+ogre should eat, and not your beautiful daughter.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the father paid no heed to what the rabbit said, and only walked on the
+faster, bidding Thakane to keep close behind him. By-and-by they met with a
+troop of great deer, called elands, and they stopped when they saw Thakane and
+sang:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Why do you give to the ogre Your child, so fair, so fair?
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You had better ask her, replied the man, “she is old enough to give you an
+answer.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then, in her turn, Thakane sang:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+I gave Koumongoé to Koane, Koumongoé to the keeper of beasts; For without
+Koumongoé they could not go to the meadows: Without Koumongoé they would starve
+in the hut; That was why I gave him the Koumongoé of my father.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And the elands all cried: “Wretched man! it is you whom the ogre should eat,
+and not your beautiful daughter.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By this time it was nearly dark, and the father said they could travel no
+further that night, and must go to sleep where they were. Thakane was thankful
+indeed when she heard this, for she was very tired, and found the two skins
+fastened round her almost too heavy to carry. So, in spite of her dread of the
+ogre, she slept till dawn, when her father woke her, and told her roughly that
+he was ready to continue their journey.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Crossing the plain, the girl and her father passed a herd of gazelles feeding.
+They lifted their heads, wondering who was out so early, and when they caught
+sight of Thakane, they sang:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Why do you give to the ogre Your child, so fair, so fair?
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You had better ask her, replied the man, “she is old enough to answer for
+herself.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then, in her turn, Thakane sang:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+I gave Koumongoé to Koane, Koumongoé to the keeper of beasts; For without
+Koumongoé they could not go to the meadows: Without Koumongoé they would starve
+in the hut; That was why I gave him the Koumongoé of my father.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And the gazelles all cried: “Wretched man! it is you whom the ogre should eat,
+and not your beautiful daughter.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last they arrived at the village where the ogre lived, and they went
+straight to his hut. He was nowhere to be seen, but in his place was his son
+Masilo, who was not an ogre at all, but a very polite young man. He ordered his
+servants to bring a pile of skins for Thakane to sit on, but told her father he
+must sit on the ground. Then, catching sight of the girl’s face, which she had
+kept down, he was struck by its beauty, and put the same question that the
+rabbit, and the elands, and the gazelles had done.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Thakane answered him as before, and he instantly commanded that she should be
+taken to the hut of his mother, and placed under her care, while the man should
+be led to his father. Directly the ogre saw him he bade the servant throw him
+into the great pot which always stood ready on the fire, and in five minutes he
+was done to a turn. After that the servant returned to Masilo and related all
+that had happened.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now Masilo had fallen in loved with Thakane the moment he saw her. At first he
+did not know what to make of this strange feeling, for all his life he had
+hated women, and had refused several brides whom his parents had chosen for
+him. However, they were so anxious that he should marry, that they willingly
+accepted Thakane as their daughter-in-law, though she did bring any marriage
+portion with her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After some time a baby was born to her, and Thakane thought it was the most
+beautiful baby that ever was seen. But when her mother-in-law saw it was a
+girl, she wrung her hands and wept, saying:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O miserable mother! Miserable child! Alas for you! why were you not a boy!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Thakane, in great surprise, asked the meaning of her distress; and the old
+woman told her that it was the custom in that country that all the girls who
+were born should be given to the ogre to eat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then Thakane clasped the baby tightly in her arms, and cried:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But it is not the customer in MY country! There, when children die, they are
+buried in the earth. No one shall take my baby from me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+That night, when everyone in the hut was asleep, Thakane rose, and carrying her
+baby on her back, went down to a place where the river spread itself out into a
+large lake, with tall willows all round the bank. Here, hidden from everyone,
+she sat down on a stone and began to think what she should do to save her
+child.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Suddenly she heard a rustling among the willows, and an old woman appeared
+before her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What are you crying for, my dear?” said she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And Thakane answered: “I was crying for my baby—I cannot hide her for ever, and
+if the ogre sees her, he will eat her; and I would rather she was drowned than
+that.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What you say is true,” replied the old woman. “Give me your child, and let me
+take care of it. And if you will fix a day to meet me here I will bring the
+baby.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then Thakane dried her eyes, and gladly accepted the old woman’s offer. When
+she got home she told her husband she had thrown it in the river, and as he had
+watched her go in that direction he never thought of doubting what she said.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+On the appointed day, Thakane slipped out when everybody was busy, and ran down
+the path that led to the lake. As soon as she got there, she crouched down
+among the willows, and sang softly:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Bring to me Dilah, Dilah the rejected one, Dilah, whom her father Masilo cast
+out!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And in a moment the old woman appeared holding the baby in her arms. Dilah had
+become so big and strong, that Thakane’s heart was filled with joy and
+gratitude, and she stayed as long as she dared, playing with her baby. At last
+she felt she must return to the village, lest she should be missed, and the
+child was handed back to the old woman, who vanished with her into the lake.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Children grow up very quickly when they live under water, and in less time than
+anyone could suppose, Dilah had changed from a baby to a woman. Her mother came
+to visit her whenever she was able, and one day, when they were sitting talking
+together, they were spied out by a man who had come to cut willows to weave
+into baskets. He was so surprised to see how like the face of the girl was to
+Masilo, that he left his work and returned to the village.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Masilo,” he said, as he entered the hut, “I have just beheld your wife near
+the river with a girl who must be your daughter, she is so like you. We have
+been deceived, for we all thought she was dead.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When he heard this, Masilo tried to look shocked because his wife had broken
+the law; but in his heart he was very glad.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But what shall we do now?” asked he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Make sure for yourself that I am speaking the truth by hiding among the bushes
+the first time Thakane says she is going to bathe in the river, and waiting
+till the girl appears.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For some days Thakane stayed quietly at home, and her husband began to think
+that the man had been mistaken; but at last she said to her husband: “I am
+going to bathe in the river.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, you can go,” answered he. But he ran down quickly by another path, and
+got there first, and hid himself in the bushes. An instant later, Thakane
+arrived, and standing on the bank, she sang:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Bring to me Dilah, Dilah the rejected one, Dilah, whom her father Masilo cast
+out!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then the old woman came out of the water, holding the girl, now tall and
+slender, by the hand. And as Masilo looked, he saw that she was indeed his
+daughter, and he wept for joy that she was not lying dead in the bottom of the
+lake. The old woman, however, seemed uneasy, and said to Thakane: “I feel as if
+someone was watching us. I will not leave the girl to-day, but will take her
+back with me”; and sinking beneath the surface, she drew the girl after her.
+After they had gone, Thakane returned to the village, which Masilo had managed
+to reach before her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All the rest of the day he sat in a corner weeping, and his mother who came in
+asked: “Why are you weeping so bitterly, my son?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“My head aches,” he answered; “it aches very badly.” And his mother passed on,
+and left him alone.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In the evening he said to his wife: “I have seen my daughter, in the place
+where you told me you had drowned her. Instead, she lives at the bottom of the
+lake, and has now grown into a young woman.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I don’t know what you are talking about,” replied Thakane. “I buried my child
+under the sand on the beach.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then Masilo implored her to give the child back to him; but she would not
+listen, and only answered: “If I were to give her back you would only obey the
+laws of your country and take her to your father, the ogre, and she would be
+eaten.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But Masilo promised that he would never let his father see her, and that now
+she was a woman no one would try to hurt her; so Thakane’s heart melted, and
+she went down to the lake to consult the old woman.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What am I to do?” she asked, when, after clapping her hands, the old woman
+appeared before her. “Yesterday Masilo beheld Dilah, and ever since he has
+entreated me to give him back his daughter.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If I let her go he must pay me a thousand head of cattle in exchange,” replied
+the old woman. And Thakane carried her answer back to Masilo.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why, I would gladly give her two thousand!” cried he, “for she has saved my
+daughter.” And he bade messengers hasten to all the neighbouring villages, and
+tell his people to send him at once all the cattle he possessed. When they were
+all assembled he chose a thousand of the finest bulls and cows, and drove them
+down to the river, followed by a great crowd wondering what would happen.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then Thakane stepped forward in front of the cattle and sang:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Bring to me Dilah, Dilah the rejected one, Dilah, whom her father Masilo cast
+out!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And Dilah came from the waters holding out her hands to Masilo and Thakane, and
+in her place the cattle sank into the lake, and were driven by the old woman to
+the great city filled with people, which lies at the bottom.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Contes Populaires des Bassoutos.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap13"></a>
+The Wicked Wolverine</h2>
+
+<p>
+One day a wolverine was out walking on the hill-side, when, on turning a
+corner, he suddenly saw a large rock.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Was that you I heard walking about just now?” he asked, for wolverines are
+cautious animals, and always like to know the reasons of things.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, certainly not,” answered the rock; “I don’t know how to walk.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But I SAW you walking,” continued the wolverine.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am afraid that you were not taught to speak the truth,” retorted the rock.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You need not speak like that, for I have SEEN you walking,” replied the
+wolverine, “though I am quite sure that you could never catch ME!” and he ran a
+little distance and then stopped to see if the rock was pursuing him; but, to
+his vexation, the rock was still in the same place. Then the wolverine went up
+close, and struck the rock a blow with his paw, saying: “Well, will you catch
+me NOW?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I can’t walk, but I can ROLL,” answered the rock.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And the wolverine laughed and said: “Oh, that will do just as well”; and began
+to run down the side of the mountain.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At first he went quite slowly, “just to give the rock a chance,” he thought to
+himself; but soon he quickened his pace, for he found that the rock was almost
+at his heels. But the faster the wolverine ran, the faster the rock rolled, and
+by-and-by the little creature began to get very tired, and was sorry he had not
+left the rock to itself. Thinking that if he could manage to put on a spurt he
+would reach the forest of great trees at the bottom of the mountain, where the
+rock could not come, he gathered up all his strength, and instead of running he
+leaped over sticks and stones, but, whatever he did, the rock was always close
+behind him. At length he grew so weary that he could not even see where he was
+going, and catching his foot in a branch he tripped and fell. The rock stopped
+at once, but there came a shriek from the wolverine:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Get off, get off! can’t you see that you are on my legs?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why did you not leave me alone?” asked the rock. “I did not want to move—I
+hate moving. But you WOULD have it, and I certainly sha’n’t move now till I am
+forced to.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will call my brothers,” answered the wolverine. “There are many of them in
+the forest, and you will soon see that they are stronger than you.” And he
+called, and called, and called, till wolves and foxes and all sorts of other
+creatures all came running to see what was the matter.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“How DID you get under that rock?” asked they, making a ring round him; but
+they had to repeat their question several times before the wolverine would
+answer, for he, like many other persons, found it hard to confess that he had
+brought his troubles on himself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, I was dull, and wanted someone to play with me,” he said at last, in
+sulky voice, “and I challenged the rock to catch me. Of course I thought I
+could run the fastest; but I tripped, and it rolled on me. It was just an
+accident.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It serves you right for being so silly,” said they; but they pushed and hauled
+at the rock for a long time without making it move an inch.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You are no good at all,” cried the wolverine crossly, for it was suffering
+great pain, “and if you cannot get me free, I shall see what my friends the
+lightning and thunder can do.” And he called loudly to the lightning to come
+and help him as quickly as possible.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In a few minutes a dark cloud came rolling up the sky, giving out such terrific
+claps of thunder that the wolves and the foxes and all the other creatures ran
+helter-skelter in all directions. But, frightened though they were, they did
+not forget to beg the lightning to take off the wolverine’s coat and to free
+his legs, but to be careful not to hurt him. So the lightning disappeared into
+the cloud for a moment to gather up fresh strength, and then came rushing down,
+right upon the rock, which it sent flying in all directions, and took the
+wolverine’s coat so neatly that, though it was torn into tiny shreds, the
+wolverine himself was quite unharmed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That was rather clumsy of you,” said he, standing up naked in his flesh.
+“Surely you could have split the rock without tearing my coat to bits!” And he
+stooped down to pick up the pieces. It took him a long time, for there were a
+great many of them, but at last he had them all in his hand.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I’ll go to my sister the frog,” he thought to himself, “and she will sew them
+together for me”; and he set off at once for the swamp in which his sister
+lived.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Will you sew my coat together? I had an unlucky accident, and it is quite
+impossible to wear,” he said, when he found her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“With pleasure,” she answered, for she had always been taught to be polite; and
+getting her needle and thread she began to fit the pieces. But though she was
+very good-natured, she was not very clever, and she got some of the bits wrong.
+When the wolverine, who was very particular about his clothes, came to put it
+on, he grew very angry.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What a useless creature you are!” cried he. “Do you expect me to go about in
+such a coat as that? Why it bulges all down the back, as if I had a hump, and
+it is so tight across the chest that I expect it to burst every time I breathe.
+I knew you were stupid, but I did not think you were as stupid as that.” And
+giving the poor frog a blow on her head, which knocked her straight into the
+water, he walked off in a rage to his younger sister the mouse.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I tore my coat this morning,” he began, when he had found her sitting at the
+door of her house eating an apple. “It was all in little bits, and I took it to
+our sister the frog to ask her to sew it for me. But just look at the way she
+has done it! You will have to take it to pieces and fit them together properly,
+and I hope I shall not have to complain again.” For as the wolverine was older
+than the mouse, he was accustomed to speak to her in this manner. However, the
+mouse was used to it and only answered: “I think you had better stay here till
+it is done, and if there is any alteration needed I can make it.” So the
+wolverine sat down on a heap of dry ferns, and picking up the apple, he
+finished it without even asking the mouse’s leave.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last the coat was ready, and the wolverine put it on.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, it fits very well,” said he, “and you have sewn it very neatly. When I
+pass this way again I will bring you a handful of corn, as a reward”; and he
+ran off as smart as ever, leaving the mouse quite grateful behind him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He wandered about for many days, till he reached a place where food was very
+scarce, and for a whole week he went without any. He was growing desperate,
+when he suddenly came upon a bear that was lying asleep. “Ah! here is food at
+last!” thought he; but how was he to kill the bear, who was so much bigger than
+himself? It was no use to try force, he must invent some cunning plan which
+would get her into his power. At last, after thinking hard, he decided upon
+something, and going up to the bear, he exclaimed: “Is that you, my sister?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The bear turned round and saw the wolverine, and murmuring to herself, so low
+that nobody could hear, “I never heard before that I had a brother,” got up and
+ran quickly to a tree, up which she climbed. Now the wolverine was very angry
+when he saw his dinner vanishing in front of him, especially as HE could not
+climb trees like the bear, so he followed, and stood at the foot of the tree,
+shrieking as loud as he could, “Come down, sister; our father has sent me to
+look for you! You were lost when you were a little girl and went out picking
+berries, and it was only the other day that we heard from a beaver where you
+were.” At these words, the bear came a little way down the tree, and the
+wolverine, seeing this, went on:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Are you not fond of berries? I am! And I know a place where they grow so thick
+the ground is quite hidden. Why, look for yourself! That hillside is quite red
+with them!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I can’t see so far,” answered the bear, now climbing down altogether. “You
+must have wonderfully good eyes! I wish I had; but my sight is very short.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“So was mine till my father smashed a pailful of cranberries, and rubbed my
+eyes with them,” replied the wolverine. “But if you like to go and gather some
+of the berries I will do just as he did, and you will soon be able to see as
+far as me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It took the bear a long while to gather the berries, for she was slow about
+everything, and, besides, it made her back ache to stoop. But at last she
+returned with a sackful, and put them down beside the wolverine. “That is
+splendid, sister!” cried the wolverine. “Now lie flat on the ground with your
+head on this stone, while I smash them.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The bear, who was very tired, was only too glad to do as she was bid, and
+stretched herself comfortably on the grass.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am ready now,” said the wolverine after a bit; “just at first you will find
+that the berries make your eyes smart, but you must be careful not to move, or
+the juice will run out, and then it will have to be done all over again.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the bear promised to lie very still; but the moment the cranberries touched
+her eyes she sprang up with a roar.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, you mustn’t mind a little pain,” said the wolverine, “it will soon be
+over, and then you will see all sorts of things you have never dreamt of.” The
+bear sank down with a groan, and as her eyes were full of cranberry juice,
+which completely blinded her, the wolverine took up a sharp knife and stabbed
+her to the heart.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then he took off the skin, and, stealing some fire from a tent, which his sharp
+eyes had perceived hidden behind a rock, he set about roasting the bear bit by
+bit. He thought the meat was the best he ever had tasted, and when dinner was
+done he made up his mind to try that same trick again, if ever he was hungry.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And very likely he did!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Adapted from Bureau of Ethnology.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap14"></a>
+The Husband of the Rat’s Daughter</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time there lived in Japan a rat and his wife who came of an old and
+noble race, and had one daughter, the loveliest girl in all the rat world. Her
+parents were very proud of her, and spared no pains to teach her all she ought
+to know. There was not another young lady in the whole town who was as clever
+as she was in gnawing through the hardest wood, or who could drop from such a
+height on to a bed, or run away so fast if anyone was heard coming. Great
+attention, too, was paid to her personal appearance, and her skin shone like
+satin, while her teeth were as white as pearls, and beautifully pointed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Of course, with all these advantages, her parents expected her to make a
+brilliant marriage, and, as she grew up, they began to look round for a
+suitable husband.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But here a difficulty arose. The father was a rat from the tip of his nose to
+the end of his tail, outside as well as in, and desired that his daughter
+should wed among her own people. She had no lack of lovers, but her father’s
+secret hopes rested on a fine young rat, with moustaches which almost swept the
+ground, whose family was still nobler and more ancient than his own. Unluckily,
+the mother had other views for her precious child. She was one of those people
+who always despise their own family and surroundings, and take pleasure in
+thinking that they themselves are made of finer material than the rest of the
+world. “HER daughter should never marry a mere rat,” she declared, holding her
+head high. “With her beauty and talents she had a right to look for someone a
+little better than THAT.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So she talked, as mothers will, to anyone that would listen to her. What the
+girl thought about the matter nobody knew or cared—it was not the fashion in
+the rat world.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Many were the quarrels which the old rat and his wife had upon the subject, and
+sometimes they bore on their faces certain marks which looked as if they had
+not kept to words only.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Reach up to the stars is MY motto,” cried the lady one day, when she was in a
+greater passion than usual. “My daughter’s beauty places her higher than
+anything upon earth,” she cried; “and I am certainly not going to accept a
+son-in-law who is beneath her.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Better offer her in marriage to the sun,” answered her husband impatiently.
+“As far as I know there is nothing greater than he.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, I WAS thinking of it,” replied the wife, “and as you are of the same
+mind, we will pay him a visit to-morrow.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the next morning, the two rats, having spent hours in making themselves
+smart, set out to see the sun, leading their daughter between them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The journey took some time, but at length they came to the golden palace where
+the sun lived.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Noble king,” began the mother, “behold our daughter! She is so beautiful that
+she is above everything in the whole world. Naturally, we wish for a son-in-law
+who, on his side, is greater than all. Therefore we have come to you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I feel very much flattered,” replied the sun, who was so busy that he had not
+the least wish to marry anybody. “You do me great honour by your proposal.
+Only, in one point you are mistaken, and it would be wrong of me to take
+advantage of your ignorance. There is something greater than I am, and that is
+the cloud. Look!” And as he spoke a cloud spread itself over the sun’s face,
+blotting out his rays.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, well, we will speak to the cloud,” said the mother. And turning to the
+cloud she repeated her proposal.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Indeed I am unworthy of anything so charming,” answered the cloud; “but you
+make a mistake again in what you say. There is one thing that is even more
+powerful than I, and that is the wind. Ah, here he comes, you can see for
+yourself.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And she DID see, for catching up the cloud as he passed, he threw it on the
+other side of the sky. Then, tumbling father, mother and daughter down to the
+earth again, he paused for a moment beside them, his foot on an old wall.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When she had recovered her breath, the mother began her little speech once
+more.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The wall is the proper husband for your daughter,” answered the wind, whose
+home consisted of a cave, which he only visited when he was not rushing about
+elsewhere; “you can see for yourself that he is greater than I, for he has
+power to stop me in my flight.” And the mother, who did not trouble to conceal
+her wishes, turned at once to the wall.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then something happened which was quite unexpected by everyone.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I won’t marry that ugly old wall, which is as old as my grandfather,” sobbed
+the girl, who had not uttered one word all this time. “I would have married the
+sun, or the cloud, or the wind, because it was my duty, although I love the
+handsome young rat, and him only. But that horrid old wall—I would sooner die!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And the wall, rather hurt in his feelings, declared that he had no claim to be
+the husband of so beautiful a girl.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is quite true,” he said, “that I can stop the wind who can part the clouds
+who can cover the sun; but there is someone who can do more than all these, and
+that is the rat. It is the rat who passes through me, and can reduce me to
+powder, simply with his teeth. If, therefore, you want a son-in-law who is
+greater than the whole world, seek him among the rats.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, what did I tell you?” cried the father. And his wife, though for the
+moment angry at being beaten, soon thought that a rat son-in-law was what she
+had always desired.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So all three returned happily home, and the wedding was celebrated three days
+after.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Contes Populaires.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap15"></a>
+The Mermaid and the Boy</h2>
+
+<p>
+Long, long ago, there lived a king who ruled over a country by the sea. When he
+had been married about a year, some of his subjects, inhabiting a distant group
+of islands, revolted against his laws, and it became needful for him to leave
+his wife and go in person to settle their disputes. The queen feared that some
+ill would come of it, and implored him to stay at home, but he told her that
+nobody could do his work for him, and the next morning the sails were spread,
+and the king started on his voyage.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The vessel had not gone very far when she ran upon a rock, and stuck so fast in
+a cleft that the strength of the whole crew could not get her off again. To
+make matters worse, the wind was rising too, and it was quite plain that in a
+few hours the ship would be dashed to pieces and everybody would be drowned,
+when suddenly the form of a mermaid was seen dancing on the waves which
+threatened every moment to overwhelm them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“There is only one way to free yourselves,” she said to the king, bobbing up
+and down in the water as she spoke, “and that is to give me your solemn word
+that you will deliver to me the first child that is born to you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The king hesitated at this proposal. He hoped that some day he might have
+children in his home, and the thought that he must yield up the heir to his
+crown was very bitter to him; but just then a huge wave broke with great force
+on the ship’s side, and his men fell on their knees and entreated him to save
+them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So he promised, and this time a wave lifted the vessel clean off the rocks, and
+she was in the open sea once more.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The affairs of the islands took longer to settle than the king had expected,
+and some months passed away before he returned to his palace. In his absence a
+son had been born to him, and so great was his joy that he quite forgot the
+mermaid and the price he had paid for the safety of his ship. But as the years
+went on, and the baby grew into a fine big boy, the remembrance of it came
+back, and one day he told the queen the whole story. From that moment the
+happiness of both their lives was ruined. Every night they went to bed
+wondering if they should find his room empty in the morning, and every day they
+kept him by their sides, expecting him to be snatched away before their very
+eyes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last the king felt that this state of things could not continue, and he said
+to his wife:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“After all, the most foolish thing in the world one can do is to keep the boy
+here in exactly the place in which the mermaid will seek him. Let us give him
+food and send him on his travels, and perhaps, if the mermaid ever blocs come
+to seek him, she may be content with some other child.” And the queen agreed
+that his plan seemed the wisest.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the boy was called, and his father told him the story of the voyage, as he
+had told his mother before him. The prince listened eagerly, and was delighted
+to think that he was to go away all by himself to see the world, and was not in
+the least frightened; for though he was now sixteen, he had scarcely been
+allowed to walk alone beyond the palace gardens. He began busily to make his
+preparations, and took off his smart velvet coat, putting on instead one of
+green cloth, while he refused a beautiful bag which the queen offered him to
+hold his food, and slung a leather knapsack over his shoulders instead, just as
+he had seen other travellers do. Then he bade farewell to his parents and went
+his way.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All through the day he walked, watching with interest the strange birds and
+animals that darted across his path in the forest or peeped at him from behind
+a bush. But as evening drew on he became tired, and looked about as he walked
+for some place where he could sleep. At length he reached a soft mossy bank
+under a tree, and was just about to stretch himself out on it, when a fearful
+roar made him start and tremble all over. In another moment something passed
+swiftly through the air and a lion stood before him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What are you doing here?” asked the lion, his eyes glaring fiercely at the
+boy.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am flying from the mermaid,” the prince answered, in a quaking voice.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Give me some food then,” said the lion, “it is past my supper time, and I am
+very hungry.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The boy was so thankful that the lion did not want to eat him, that he gladly
+picked up his knapsack which lay on the ground, and held out some bread and a
+flask of wine.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I feel better now,” said the lion when he had done, “so now I shall go to
+sleep on this nice soft moss, and if you like you can lie down beside me.” So
+the boy and the lion slept soundly side by side, till the sun rose.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I must be off now,” remarked the lion, shaking the boy as he spoke; “but cut
+off the tip of my ear, and keep it carefully, and if you are in any danger just
+wish yourself a lion and you will become one on the spot. One good turn
+deserves another, you know.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince thanked him for his kindness, and did as he was bid, and the two
+then bade each other farewell.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I wonder how it feels to be a lion,” thought the boy, after he had gone a
+little way; and he took out the tip of the ear from the breast of his jacket
+and wished with all his might. In an instant his head had swollen to several
+times its usual size, and his neck seemed very hot and heavy; and, somehow, his
+hands became paws, and his skin grew hairy and yellow. But what pleased him
+most was his long tail with a tuft at the end, which he lashed and switched
+proudly. “I like being a lion very much,” he said to himself, and trotted gaily
+along the road.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After a while, however, he got tired of walking in this unaccustomed way—it
+made his back ache and his front paws felt sore. So he wished himself a boy
+again, and in the twinkling of an eye his tail disappeared and his head shrank,
+and the long thick mane became short and curly. Then he looked out for a
+sleeping place, and found some dry ferns, which he gathered and heaped up.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But before he had time to close his eyes there was a great noise in the trees
+near by, as if a big heavy body was crashing through them. The boy rose and
+turned his head, and saw a huge black bear coming towards him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What are you doing here?” cried the bear.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am running away from the mermaid,” answered the boy; but the bear took no
+interest in the mermaid, and only said: “I am hungry; give me something to
+eat.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The knapsack was lying on the ground among the fern, but the prince picked it
+up, and, unfastening the strap, took out his second flask of wine and another
+loaf of bread. “We will have supper together,” he remarked politely; but the
+bear, who had never been taught manners, made no reply, and ate as fast as he
+could. When he had quite finished, he got up and stretched himself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You have got a comfortable-looking bed there,” he observed. “I really think
+that, bad sleeper as I am, I might have a good night on it. I can manage to
+squeeze you in,” he added; “you don’t take up a great deal of room.” The boy
+was rather indignant at the bear’s cool way of talking; but as he was too tired
+to gather more fern, they lay down side by side, and never stirred till sunrise
+next morning.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I must go now,” said the bear, pulling the sleepy prince on to his feet; “but
+first you shall cut off the tip of my ear, and when you are in any danger just
+wish yourself a bear and you will become one. One good turn deserves another,
+you know.” And the boy did as he was bid, and he and the bear bade each other
+farewell.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I wonder how it feels to be a bear,” thought he to himself when he had walked
+a little way; and he took out the tip from the breast of his coat and wished
+hard that he might become a bear. The next moment his body stretched out and
+thick black fur covered him all over. As before, his hands were changed into
+paws, but when he tried to switch his tail he found to his disgust that it
+would not go any distance. “Why it is hardly worth calling a tail!” said he.
+For the rest of the day he remained a bear and continued his journey, but as
+evening came on the bear-skin, which had been so useful when plunging through
+brambles in the forest, felt rather heavy, and he wished himself a boy again.
+He was too much exhausted to take the trouble of cutting any fern or seeking
+for moss, but just threw himself down under a tree, when exactly above his head
+he heard a great buzzing as a bumble-bee alighted on a honeysuckle branch.
+“What are you doing here?” asked the bee in a cross voice; “at your age you
+ought to be safe at home.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am running away from the mermaid,” replied the boy; but the bee, like the
+lion and the bear, was one of those people who never listen to the answers to
+their questions, and only said: “I am hungry. Give me something to eat.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The boy took his last loaf and flask out of his knapsack and laid them on the
+ground, and they had supper together. “Well, now I am going to sleep,” observed
+the bee when the last crumb was gone, “but as you are not very big I can make
+room for you beside me,” and he curled up his wings, and tucked in his legs,
+and he and the prince both slept soundly till morning. Then the bee got up and
+carefully brushed every scrap of dust off his velvet coat and buzzed loudly in
+the boy’s ear to waken him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Take a single hair from one of my wings,” said he, “and if you are in danger
+just wish yourself a bee and you will become one. One good turn deserves
+another, so farewell, and thank you for your supper.” And the bee departed
+after the boy had pulled out the hair and wrapped it carefully in a leaf.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It must feel quite different to be a bee from what it does to be a lion or
+bear,” thought the boy to himself when he had walked for an hour or two. “I
+dare say I should get on a great deal faster,” so he pulled out his hair and
+wished himself a bee.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In a moment the strangest thing happened to him. All his limbs seemed to draw
+together, and his body to become very short and round; his head grew quite
+tiny, and instead of his white skin he was covered with the richest, softest
+velvet. Better than all, he had two lovely gauze wings which carried him the
+whole day without getting tired.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Late in the afternoon the boy fancied he saw a vast heap of stones a long way
+off, and he flew straight towards it. But when he reached the gates he saw that
+it was really a great town, so he wished himself back in his own shape and
+entered the city.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He found the palace doors wide open and went boldly into a sort of hall which
+was full of people, and where men and maids were gossiping together. He joined
+their talk and soon learned from them that the king had only one daughter who
+had such a hatred to men that she would never suffer one to enter her presence.
+Her father was in despair, and had had pictures painted of the handsomest
+princes of all the courts in the world, in the hope that she might fall in love
+with one of them; but it was no use; the princess would not even allow the
+pictures to be brought into her room.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is late,” remarked one of the women at last; “I must go to my mistress.”
+And, turning to one of the lackeys, she bade him find a bed for the youth.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is not necessary,” answered the prince, “this bench is good enough for me.
+I am used to nothing better.” And when the hall was empty he lay down for a few
+minutes. But as soon as everything was quiet in the palace he took out the hair
+and wished himself a bee, and in this shape he flew upstairs, past the guards,
+and through the keyhole into the princess’s chamber. Then he turned himself
+into a man again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this dreadful sight the princess, who was broad awake, began to scream
+loudly. “A man! a man!” cried she; but when the guards rushed in there was only
+a bumble-bee buzzing about the room. They looked under the bed, and behind the
+curtains, and into the cupboards, then came to the conclusion that the princess
+had had a bad dream, and bowed themselves out. The door had scarcely closed on
+them than the bee disappeared, and a handsome youth stood in his place.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I knew a man was hidden somewhere,” cried the princess, and screamed more
+loudly than before. Her shrieks brought back the guards, but though they looked
+in all kinds of impossible places no man was to be seen, and so they told the
+princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“He was here a moment ago—I saw him with my own eyes,” and the guards dared not
+contradict her, though they shook their heads and whispered to each other that
+the princess had gone mad on this subject, and saw a man in every table and
+chair. And they made up their minds that—let her scream as loudly as she
+might—they would take no notice.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the princess saw clearly what they were thinking, and that in future her
+guards would give her no help, and would perhaps, besides, tell some stories
+about her to the king, who would shut her up in a lonely tower and prevent her
+walking in the gardens among her birds and flowers. So when, for the third
+time, she beheld the prince standing before her, she did not scream but sat up
+in bed gazing at him in silent terror.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Do not be afraid,” he said, “I shall not hurt you”; and he began to praise her
+gardens, of which he had heard the servants speak, and the birds and flowers
+which she loved, till the princess’s anger softened, and she answered him with
+gentle words. Indeed, they soon became so friendly that she vowed she would
+marry no one else, and confided to him that in three days her father would be
+off to the wars, leaving his sword in her room. If any man could find it and
+bring it to him he would receive her hand as a reward. At this point a cock
+crew, and the youth jumped up hastily saying: “Of course I shall ride with the
+king to the war, and if I do not return, take your violin every evening to the
+seashore and play on it, so that the very sea-kobolds who live at the bottom of
+the ocean may hear it and come to you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Just as the princess had foretold, in three days the king set out for the war
+with a large following, and among them was the young prince, who had presented
+himself at court as a young noble in search of adventures. They had left the
+city many miles behind them, when the king suddenly discovered that he had
+forgotten his sword, and though all his attendants instantly offered theirs, he
+declared that he could fight with none but his own.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The first man who brings it to me from my daughter’s room,” cried he, “shall
+not only have her to wife, but after my death shall reign in my stead.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this the Red Knight, the young prince, and several more turned their horses
+to ride as fast as the wind back to the palace. But suddenly a better plan
+entered the prince’s head, and, letting the others pass him, he took his
+precious parcel from his breast and wished himself a lion. Then on he bounded,
+uttering such dreadful roars that the horses were frightened and grew
+unmanageable, and he easily outstripped them, and soon reached the gates of the
+palace. Here he hastily changed himself into a bee, and flew straight into the
+princess’s room, where he became a man again. She showed him where the sword
+hung concealed behind a curtain, and he took it down, saying as he did so: “Be
+sure not to forget what you have promised to do.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The princess made no reply, but smiled sweetly, and slipping a golden ring from
+her finger she broke it in two and held half out silently to the prince, while
+the other half she put in her own pocket. He kissed it, and ran down the stairs
+bearing the sword with him. Some way off he met the Red Knight and the rest,
+and the Red Knight at first tried to take the sword from him by force. But as
+the youth proved too strong for him, he gave it up, and resolved to wait for a
+better opportunity.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This soon came, for the day was hot and the prince was thirsty. Perceiving a
+little stream that ran into the sea, he turned aside, and, unbuckling the
+sword, flung himself on the ground for a long drink. Unluckily, the mermaid
+happened at that moment to be floating on the water not very far off, and knew
+he was the boy who had been given her before he was born. So she floated gently
+in to where he was lying, she seized him by the arm, and the waves closed over
+them both. Hardly had they disappeared, when the Red Knight stole cautiously
+up, and could hardly believe his eyes when he saw the king’s sword on the bank.
+He wondered what had become of the youth, who an hour before had guarded his
+treasure so fiercely; but, after all, that was no affair of his! So, fastening
+the sword to his belt, he carried it to the king.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The war was soon over, and the king returned to his people, who welcomed him
+with shouts of joy. But when the princess from her window saw that her
+betrothed was not among the attendants riding behind her father, her heart
+sank, for she knew that some evil must have befallen him, and she feared the
+Red Knight. She had long ago learned how clever and how wicked he was, and
+something whispered to her that it was he who would gain the credit of having
+carried back the sword, and would claim her as his bride, though he had never
+even entered her chamber. And she could do nothing; for although the king loved
+her, he never let her stand in the way of his plans.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The poor princess was only too right, and everything came to pass exactly as
+she had foreseen it. The king told her that the Red Knight had won her fairly,
+and that the wedding would take place next day, and there would be a great
+feast after it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In those days feasts were much longer and more splendid than they are now; and
+it was growing dark when the princess, tired out with all she had gone through,
+stole up to her own room for a little quiet. But the moon was shining so
+brightly over the sea that it seemed to draw her towards it, and taking her
+violin under her arm, she crept down to the shore.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Listen! listen! said the mermaid to the prince, who was lying stretched on a
+bed of seaweeds at the bottom of the sea. “Listen! that is your old love
+playing, for mermaids know everything that happens upon earth.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I hear nothing,” answered the youth, who did not look happy. “Take me up
+higher, where the sounds can reach me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the mermaid took him on her shoulders and bore him up midway to the surface.
+“Can you hear now?” she asked.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No,” answered the prince, “I hear nothing but the water rushing; I must go
+higher still.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then the mermaid carried him to the very top. “You must surely be able to hear
+now?” said she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Nothing but the water,” repeated the youth. So she took him right to the land.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“At any rate you can hear now?” she said again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The water is still rushing in my ears,” answered he; “but wait a little, that
+will soon pass off.” And as he spoke he put his hand into his breast, and
+seizing the hair wished himself a bee, and flew straight into the pocket of the
+princess. The mermaid looked in vain for him, and coated all night upon the
+sea; but he never came back, and never more did he gladden her eyes. But the
+princess felt that something strange was about her, though she knew not what,
+and returned quickly to the palace, where the young man at once resumed his own
+shape. Oh, what joy filled her heart at the sight of him! But there was no time
+to be lost, and she led him right into the hall, where the king and his nobles
+were still sitting at the feast. “Here is a man who boasts that he can do
+wonderful tricks,” said she, “better even than the Red Knight’s! That cannot be
+true, of course, but it might be well to give this impostor a lesson. He
+pretends, for instance, that he can turn himself into a lion; but that I do not
+believe. I know that you have studied the art of magic,” she went on, turning
+to the Red Knight, “so suppose you just show him how it is done, and bring
+shame upon him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the Red Knight had never opened a book of magic in his life; but he was
+accustomed to think that he could do everything better than other people
+without any teaching at all. So he turned and twisted himself about, and
+bellowed and made faces; but he did not become a lion for all that.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, perhaps it is very difficult to change into a lion. Make yourself a
+bear,” said the princess. But the Red Knight found it no easier to become a
+bear than a lion.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Try a bee,” suggested she. “I have always read that anyone who can do magic at
+all can do that.” And the old knight buzzed and hummed, but he remained a man
+and not a bee.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now it is your turn,” said the princess to the youth. “Let us see if you can
+change yourself into a lion.” And in a moment such a fierce creature stood
+before them, that all the guests rushed out of the hall, treading each other
+underfoot in their fright. The lion sprang at the Red Knight, and would have
+torn him in pieces had not the princess held him back, and bidden him to change
+himself into a man again. And in a second a man took the place of the lion.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now become a bear,” said she; and a bear advanced panting and stretching out
+his arms to the Red Knight, who shrank behind the princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By this time some of the guests had regained their courage, and returned as far
+as the door, thinking that if it was safe for the princess perhaps it was safe
+for them. The king, who was braver than they, and felt it needful to set them a
+good example besides, had never left his seat, and when at a new command of the
+princess the bear once more turned into a man, he was silent from astonishment,
+and a suspicion of the truth began to dawn on him. “Was it he who fetched the
+sword?” asked the king.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, it was,” answered the princess; and she told him the whole story, and how
+she had broken her gold ring and given him half of it. And the prince took out
+his half of the ring, and the princess took out hers, and they fitted exactly.
+Next day the Red Knight was hanged, as he richly deserved, and there was a new
+marriage feast for the prince and princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Lapplandische Mahrchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap16"></a>
+Pivi and Kabo</h2>
+
+<p>
+When birds were men, and men were birds, Pivi and Kabo lived in an island far
+away, called New Claledonia. Pivi was a cheery little bird that chirps at
+sunset; Kabo was an ugly black fowl that croaks in the darkness. One day Pivi
+and Kabo thought that they would make slings, and practice slinging, as the
+people of the island still do. So they went to a banyan tree, and stripped the
+bark to make strings for their slings, and next they repaired to the river bank
+to find stones. Kabo stood on the bank of the river, and Pivi went into the
+water. The game was for Kabo to sling at Pivi, and for Pivi to dodge the
+stones, if he could. For some time he dodged them cleverly, but at last a stone
+from Kabo’s sling hit poor Pivi on the leg and broke it. Down went Pivi into
+the stream, and floated along it, till he floated into a big hollow bamboo,
+which a woman used for washing her sweet potatoes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What is that in my bamboo?” said the woman. And she blew in at one end, and
+blew little Pivi out at the other, like a pea from a pea-shooter.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh!” cried the woman, “what a state you are in! What have you been doing?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It was Kabo who broke my leg at the slinging game,” said Pivi.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, I am sorry for you,” said the woman; “will you come with me, and do what
+I tell you?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will!” said Pivi, for the woman was very kind and pretty. She took Pivi into
+a shed where she kept her fruit laid him on a bed of mats, and made him as
+comfortable as she could, and attended to his broken leg without cutting off
+the flesh round the bone, as these people usually do.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You will be still, won’t you, Pivi?” she said. “If you hear a little noise you
+will pretend to be dead. It is the Black Ant who will come and creep from your
+feet up to your head. Say nothing, and keep quiet, won’t you, Pivi?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Certainly, kind lady,” said Pivi, “I will lie as still as can be.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Next will come the big Red Ant—you know him?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, I know him, with his feet like a grasshopper’s.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“He will walk over your body up to your head. Then you must shake all your
+body. Do you understand, Pivi?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, dear lady, I shall do just as you say.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Very good,” said the woman, going out and shutting the door.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Pivi lay still under his coverings, then a tiny noise was heard, and the Black
+Ant began to march over Pivi, who lay quite still. Then came the big Red Ant
+skipping along his body, and then Pivi shook himself all over. He jumped up
+quite well again, he ran to the river, he looked into the water and saw that he
+was changed from a bird into a fine young man!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, lady,” he cried, “look at me now! I am changed into a man, and so
+handsome!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Will you obey me again?” said the woman.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Always; whatever you command I will do it,” said Pivi, politely.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Then climb up that cocoa-nut tree, with your legs only, not using your hands,”
+said the woman.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the natives can run up cocoa-nut trees like squirrels, some using only one
+hand; the girls can do that. But few can climb without using their hands at
+all.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“At the top of the tree you will find two cocoa-nuts. You must not throw them
+down, but carry them in your hands; and you must descend as you went up, using
+your legs only.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I shall try, at least,” said Pivi. And up he went, but it was very difficult,
+and down he came.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Here are your cocoa-nuts,” he said, presenting them to the woman.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now, Pivi, put them in the shed where you lay, and when the sun sets to cool
+himself in the sea and rise again not so hot in the dawn you must go and take
+the nuts.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All day Pivi played about in the river, as the natives do, throwing fruit and
+silvery showers of water at each other. When the sun set he went into the hut.
+But as he drew near he heard sweet voices talking and laughing within.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What is that? People chattering in the hut! Perhaps they have taken my
+cocoa-nuts,” said Pivi to himself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In he went, and there he found two pretty, laughing, teasing girls. He hunted
+for his cocoanuts, but none were there.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Down he ran to the river. “Oh, lady, my nuts have been stolen!” he cried.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Come with me, Pivi, and there will be nuts for you,” said the woman.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They went back to the hut, where the girls were laughing and playing.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Nuts for you?” said the woman, “there are two wives for you, Pivi, take them
+to your house.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, good lady,” cried Pivi, “how kind you are!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So they were married and very happy, when in came cross old Kabo.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Is this Pivi?” said he. “Yes, it is—no, it isn’t. It is not the same Pivi—but
+there is a kind of likeness. Tell me, are you Pivi?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, yes!” said Pivi. “But I am much better looking, and there are my two
+wives, are they not beautiful?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You are mocking me, Pivi! Your wives? How? Where did you get them? You, with
+wives!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then Pivi told Kabo about the kind woman, and all the wonderful things that had
+happened to him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, well!” said Kabo, “but I want to be handsome too, and to have pretty
+young wives.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But how can we manage that?” asked Pivi.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, we shall do all the same things over again—play at slinging, and, this
+time, you shall break my leg, Pivi!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“With all the pleasure in life,” said Pivi, who was always ready to oblige.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So they went slinging, and Pivi broke Kabo’s leg, and Kabo fell into the river,
+and floated into the bamboo, and the woman blew him out, just as before. Then
+she picked up Kabo, and put him in the shed, and told him what to do when the
+Black Ant came, and what to do when the Red Ant came. But he didn’t!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the Black Ant came, he shook himself, and behold, he had a twisted leg,
+and a hump back, and was as black as the ant.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then he ran to the woman.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Look, what a figure I am!” he said; but she only told him to climb the tree,
+as she had told Pivi.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But Kabo climbed with both hands and feet, and he threw down the nuts, instead
+of carrying them down, and he put them in the hut. And when he went back for
+them there he found two horrid old black hags, wrangling, and scolding, and
+scratching! So back he went to Pivi with his two beautiful wives, and Pivi was
+very sorry, but what could he do? Nothing, but sit and cry.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So, one day, Kabo came and asked Pivi to sail in his canoe to a place where he
+knew of a great big shell-fish, enough to feed on for a week. Pivi went, and
+deep in the clear water they saw a monstrous shell-fish, like an oyster, as big
+as a rock, with the shell wide open.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“We shall catch it, and dry it, and kipper it,” said Pivi, “and give a dinner
+to all our friends!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I shall dive for it, and break it off the rock,” said Kabo, “and then you must
+help me to drag it up into the canoe.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+There the shell-fish lay and gaped, but Kabo, though he dived in, kept well out
+of the way of the beast.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Up he came, puffing and blowing: “Oh, Pivi,” he cried, “I cannot move it. Jump
+in and try yourself!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Pivi dived, with his spear, and the shell-fish opened its shell wider yet, and
+sucked, and Pivi disappeared into its mouth, and the shell shut up with a snap!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Kabo laughed like a fiend, and then went home.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where is Pivi?” asked the two pretty girls. Kabo pretended to cry, and told
+how Pivi had been swallowed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But dry your tears, my darlings,” said Kabo, “I will be your husband, and my
+wives shall be your slaves. Everything is for the best, in the best of all
+possible worlds.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, no!” cried the girls, “we love Pivi. We do not love anyone else. We shall
+stay at home, and weep for Pivi!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Wretched idiots!” cried Kabo; “Pivi was a scoundrel who broke my leg, and
+knocked me into the river.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then a little cough was heard at the door, and Kabo trembled, for he knew it
+was the cough of Pivi!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, dear Pivi!” cried Kabo, rushing to the door. “What joy! I was trying to
+console your dear wives.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Pivi said not one word. He waved his hand, and five and twenty of his friends
+came trooping down the hill. They cut up Kabo into little pieces. Pivi turned
+round, and there was the good woman of the river.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Pivi,” she said, “how did you get out of the living tomb into which Kabo sent
+you?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I had my spear with me,” said Pivi. “It was quite dry inside the shell, and I
+worked away at the fish with my spear, till he saw reason to open his shell,
+and out I came.” Then the good woman laughed; and Pivi and his two wives lived
+happy ever afterwards.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Moncelon. Bulletin de la Societe d’Anthropologie. Series iii. vol. ix., pp.
+613-365.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap17"></a>
+The Elf Maiden</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time two young men living in a small village fell in love with the
+same girl. During the winter, it was all night except for an hour or so about
+noon, when the darkness seemed a little less dark, and then they used to see
+which of them could tempt her out for a sleigh ride with the Northern Lights
+flashing above them, or which could persuade her to come to a dance in some
+neighbouring barn. But when the spring began, and the light grew longer, the
+hearts of the villagers leapt at the sight of the sun, and a day was fixed for
+the boats to be brought out, and the great nets to be spread in the bays of
+some islands that lay a few miles to the north. Everybody went on this
+expedition, and the two young men and the girl went with them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They all sailed merrily across the sea chattering like a flock of magpies, or
+singing their favourite songs. And when they reached the shore, what an
+unpacking there was! For this was a noted fishing ground, and here they would
+live, in little wooden huts, till autumn and bad weather came round again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The maiden and the two young men happened to share the same hut with some
+friends, and fished daily from the same boat. And as time went on, one of the
+youths remarked that the girl took less notice of him than she did of his
+companion. At first he tried to think that he was dreaming, and for a long
+while he kept his eyes shut very tight to what he did not want to see, but in
+spite of his efforts, the truth managed to wriggle through, and then the young
+man gave up trying to deceive himself, and set about finding some way to get
+the better of his rival.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The plan that he hit upon could not be carried out for some months; but the
+longer the young man thought of it, the more pleased he was with it, so he made
+no sign of his feelings, and waited patiently till the moment came. This was
+the very day that they were all going to leave the islands, and sail back to
+the mainland for the winter. In the bustle and hurry of departure, the cunning
+fisherman contrived that their boat should be the last to put off, and when
+everything was ready, and the sails about to be set, he suddenly called out:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, dear, what shall I do! I have left my best knife behind in the hut. Run,
+like a good fellow, and get it for me, while I raise the anchor and loosen the
+tiller.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Not thinking any harm, the youth jumped back on shore and made his way up the
+steep hank. At the door of the hut he stopped and looked back, then started and
+gazed in horror. The head of the boat stood out to sea, and he was left alone
+on the island.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Yes, there was no doubt of it—he was quite alone; and he had nothing to help
+him except the knife which his comrade had purposely dropped on the ledge of
+the window. For some minutes he was too stunned by the treachery of his friend
+to think about anything at all, but after a while he shook himself awake, and
+determined that he would manage to keep alive somehow, if it were only to
+revenge himself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So he put the knife in his pocket and went off to a part of the island which
+was not so bare as the rest, and had a small grove of trees. From one of these
+he cut himself a bow, which he strung with a piece of cord that had been left
+lying about the huts.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When this was ready the young man ran down to the shore and shot one or two
+sea-birds, which he plucked and cooked for supper.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In this way the months slipped by, and Christmas came round again. The evening
+before, the youth went down to the rocks and into the copse, collecting all the
+drift wood the sea had washed up or the gale had blown down, and he piled it up
+in a great stack outside the door, so that he might not have to fetch any all
+the next day. As soon as his task was done, he paused and looked out towards
+the mainland, thinking of Christmas Eve last year, and the merry dance they had
+had. The night was still and cold, and by the help of the Northern Lights he
+could almost sea across to the opposite coast, when, suddenly, he noticed a
+boat, which seemed steering straight for the island. At first he could hardly
+stand for joy, the chance of speaking to another man was so delightful; but as
+the boat drew near there was something, he could not tell what, that was
+different from the boats which he had been used to all his life, and when it
+touched the shore he saw that the people that filled it were beings of another
+world than ours. Then he hastily stepped behind the wood stack, and waited for
+what might happen next.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The strange folk one by one jumped on to the rocks, each bearing a load of
+something that they wanted. Among the women he remarked two young girls, more
+beautiful and better dressed than any of the rest, carrying between them two
+great baskets full of provisions. The young man peeped out cautiously to see
+what all this crowd could be doing inside the tiny hut, but in a moment he drew
+back again, as the girls returned, and looked about as if they wanted to find
+out what sort of a place the island was.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Their sharp eyes soon discovered the form of a man crouching behind the bundles
+of sticks, and at first they felt a little frightened, and started as if they
+would run away. But the youth remained so still, that they took courage and
+laughed gaily to each other. “What a strange creature, let us try what he is
+made of,” said one, and she stooped down and gave him a pinch.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the young man had a pin sticking in the sleeve of his jacket, and the
+moment the girl’s hand touched him she pricked it so sharply that the blood
+came. The girl screamed so loudly that the people all ran out of their huts to
+see what was the matter. But directly they caught sight of the man they turned
+and fled in the other direction, and picking up the goods they had brought with
+them scampered as fast as they could down to the shore. In an instant, boat,
+people, and goods had vanished completely.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In their hurry they had, however, forgotten two things: a bundle of keys which
+lay on the table, and the girl whom the pin had pricked, and who now stood pale
+and helpless beside the wood stack.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You will have to make me your wife,” she said at last, “for you have drawn my
+blood, and I belong to you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why not? I am quite willing,” answered he. “But how do you suppose we can
+manage to live till summer comes round again?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Do not be anxious about that,” said the girl; “if you will only marry me all
+will be well. I am very rich, and all my family are rich also.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then the young man gave her his promise to make her his wife, and the girl
+fulfilled her part of the bargain, and food was plentiful on the island all
+through the long winter months, though he never knew how it got there. And
+by-and-by it was spring once more, and time for the fisher-folk to sail from
+the mainland.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where are we to go now?” asked the girl, one day, when the sun seemed brighter
+and the wind softer than usual.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I do not care where I go,” answered the young man; “what do you think?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The girl replied that she would like to go somewhere right at the other end of
+the island, and build a house, far away from the huts of the fishing-folk. And
+he consented, and that very day they set off in search of a sheltered spot on
+the banks of a stream, so that it would be easy to get water.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In a tiny bay, on the opposite side of the island they found the very thing,
+which seemed to have been made on purpose for them; and as they were tired with
+their long walk, they laid themselves down on a bank of moss among some birches
+and prepared to have a good night’s rest, so as to be fresh for work next day.
+But before she went to sleep the girl turned to her husband, and said: “If in
+your dreams you fancy that you hear strange noises, be sure you do not stir, or
+get up to see what it is.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, it is not likely we shall hear any noises in such a quiet place,” answered
+he, and fell sound asleep.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Suddenly he was awakened by a great clatter about his ears, as if all the
+workmen in the world were sawing and hammering and building close to him. He
+was just going to spring up and go to see what it meant, when he luckily
+remembered his wife’s words and lay still. But the time till morning seemed
+very long, and with the first ray of sun they both rose, and pushed aside the
+branches of the birch trees. There, in the very place they had chosen, stood a
+beautiful house—doors and windows, and everything all complete!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now you must fix on a spot for your cow-stalls,” said the girl, when they had
+breakfasted off wild cherries; “and take care it is the proper size, neither
+too large nor too small.” And the husband did as he was bid, though he wondered
+what use a cow-house could be, as they had no cows to put in it. But as he was
+a little afraid of his wife, who knew so much more than he, he asked no
+questions.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This night also he was awakened by the same sounds as before, and in the
+morning they found, near the stream, the most beautiful cow-house that ever was
+seen, with stalls and milk-pails and stools all complete, indeed, everything
+that a cow-house could possibly want, except the cows. Then the girl bade him
+measure out the ground for a storehouse, and this, she said, might be as large
+as he pleased; and when the storehouse was ready she proposed that they should
+set off to pay her parents a visit.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The old people welcomed them heartily, and summoned their neighbours, for many
+miles round, to a great feast in their honour. In fact, for several weeks there
+was no work done on the farm at all; and at length the young man and his wife
+grew tired of so much play, and declared that they must return to their own
+home. But, before they started on the journey, the wife whispered to her
+husband: “Take care to jump over the threshold as quick as you can, or it will
+be the worse for you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The young man listened to her words, and sprang over the threshold like an
+arrow from a bow; and it was well he did, for, no sooner was he on the other
+side, than his father-in-law threw a great hammer at him, which would have
+broken both his legs, if it had only touched them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When they had gone some distance on the road home, the girl turned to her
+husband and said: “Till you step inside the house, be sure you do not look
+back, whatever you may hear or see.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And the husband promised, and for a while all was still; and he thought no more
+about the matter till he noticed at last that the nearer he drew to the house
+the louder grew the noise of the trampling of feet behind him. As he laid his
+hand upon the door he thought he was safe, and turned to look. There, sure
+enough, was a vast herd of cattle, which had been sent after him by his
+father-in-law when he found that his daughter had been cleverer than he. Half
+of the herd were already through the fence and cropping the grass on the banks
+of the stream, but half still remained outside and faded into nothing, even as
+he watched them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+However, enough cattle were left to make the young man rich, and he and his
+wife lived happily together, except that every now and then the girl vanished
+from his sight, and never told him where she had been. For a long time he kept
+silence about it; but one day, when he had been complaining of her absence, she
+said to him: “Dear husband, I am bound to go, even against my will, and there
+is only one way to stop me. Drive a nail into the threshold, and then I can
+never pass in or out.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And so he did.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Lapplandische Mahrchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap18"></a>
+How Some Wild Animals Became Tame Ones</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time there lived a miller who was so rich that, when he was going
+to be married, he asked to the feast not only his own friends but also the wild
+animals who dwelt in the hills and woods round about. The chief of the bears,
+the wolves, the foxes, the horses, the cows, the goats, the sheep, and the
+reindeer, all received invitations; and as they were not accustomed to weddings
+they were greatly pleased and flattered, and sent back messages in the politest
+language that they would certainly be there.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The first to start on the morning of the wedding-day was the bear, who always
+liked to be punctual; and, besides, he had a long way to go, and his hair,
+being so thick and rough, needed a good brushing before it was fit to be seen
+at a party. However, he took care to awaken very early, and set off down the
+road with a light heart. Before he had walked very far he met a boy who came
+whistling along, hitting at the tops of the flowers with a stick.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where are you going?” said he, looking at the bear in surprise, for he was an
+old acquaintance, and not generally so smart.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, just to the miller’s marriage,” answered the bear carelessly. “Of course,
+I would much rather stay at home, but the miller was so anxious I should be
+there that I really could not refuse.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Don’t go, don’t go!” cried the boy. “If you do you will never come back! You
+have got the most beautiful skin in the world—just the kind that everyone is
+wanting, and they will be sure to kill you and strip you of it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I had not thought of that,” said the bear, whose face turned white, only
+nobody could see it. “If you are certain that they would be so wicked—but
+perhaps you are jealous because nobody has invited you?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, nonsense!” replied the boy angrily, “do as you see. It is your skin, and
+not mine; I don’t care what becomes of it!” And he walked quickly on with his
+head in the air.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The bear waited until he was out of sight, and then followed him slowly, for he
+felt in his heart that the boy’s advice was good, though he was too proud to
+say so.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The boy soon grew tired of walking along the road, and turned off into the
+woods, where there were bushes he could jump and streams he could wade; but he
+had not gone far before he met the wolf.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where are you going?” asked he, for it was not the first time he had seen him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, just to the miller’s marriage,” answered the wolf, as the bear had done
+before him. “It is rather tiresome, of course—weddings are always so stupid;
+but still one must be good-natured!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Don’t go!” said the boy again. “Your skin is so thick and warm, and winter is
+not far off now. They will kill you, and strip it from you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The wolf’s jaw dropped in astonishment and terror. “Do you really think that
+would happen?” he gasped.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, to be sure, I do,” answered the boy. “But it is your affair, not mine. So
+good-morning,” and on he went. The wolf stood still for a few minutes, for he
+was trembling all over, and then crept quietly back to his cave.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Next the boy met the fox, whose lovely coat of silvery grey was shining in the
+sun.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You look very fine!” said the boy, stopping to admire him, “are you going to
+the miller’s wedding too?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes,” answered the fox; “it is a long journey to take for such a thing as
+that, but you know what the miller’s friends are like—so dull and heavy! It is
+only kind to go and amuse them a little.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You poor fellow,” said the boy pityingly. “Take my advice and stay at home. If
+you once enter the miller’s gate his dogs will tear you in pieces.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, well, such things have occurred, I know,” replied the fox gravely. And
+without saying any more he trotted off the way he had come.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+His tail had scarcely disappeared, when a great noise of crashing branches was
+heard, and up bounded the horse, his black skin glistening like satin.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Good-morning,” he called to the boy as he galloped past, “I can’t wait to talk
+to you now. I have promised the miller to be present at his wedding-feast, and
+they won’t sit down till I come.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Stop! stop!” cried the boy after him, and there was something in his voice
+that made the horse pull up. “What is the matter?” asked he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You don’t know what you are doing,” said the boy. “If once you go there you
+will never gallop through these woods any more. You are stronger than many men,
+but they will catch you and put ropes round you, and you will have to work and
+to serve them all the days of your life.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The horse threw back his head at these words, and laughed scornfully.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, I am stronger than many men,” answered he, “and all the ropes in the
+world would not hold me. Let them bind me as fast as they will, I can always
+break loose, and return to the forest and freedom.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And with this proud speech he gave a whisk of his long tail, and galloped away
+faster than before.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But when he reached the miller’s house everything happened as the boy had said.
+While he was looking at the guests and thinking how much handsomer and stronger
+he was than any of them, a rope was suddenly flung over his head, and he was
+thrown down and a bit thrust between his teeth. Then, in spite of his
+struggles, he was dragged to a stable, and shut up for several days without any
+food, till his spirit was broken and his coat had lost its gloss. After that he
+was harnessed to a plough, and had plenty of time to remember all he had lost
+through not listening to the counsel of the boy.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the horse had turned a deaf ear to his words the boy wandered idly along,
+sometimes gathering wild strawberries from a bank, and sometimes plucking wild
+cherries from a tree, till he reached a clearing in the middle of the forest.
+Crossing this open space was a beautiful milk-white cow with a wreath of
+flowers round her neck.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Good-morning,” she said pleasantly, as she came up to the place where the boy
+was standing.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Good-morning,” he returned. “Where are you going in such a hurry?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“To the miller’s wedding; I am rather late already, for the wreath took such a
+long time to make, so I can’t stop.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Don’t go,” said the boy earnestly; when once they have tasted your milk they
+will never let you leave them, and you will have to serve them all the days of
+your life.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, nonsense; what do you know about it?” answered the cow, who always thought
+she was wiser than other people. “Why, I can run twice as fast as any of them!
+I should like to see anybody try to keep me against my will.” And, without even
+a polite bow, she went on her way, feeling very much offended.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But everything turned out just as the boy had said. The company had all heard
+of the fame of the cow’s milk, and persuaded her to give them some, and then
+her doom was sealed. A crowd gathered round her, and held her horns so that she
+could not use them, and, like the horse, she was shut in the stable, and only
+let out in the mornings, when a long rope was tied round her head, and she was
+fastened to a stake in a grassy meadow.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And so it happened to the goat and to the sheep.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Last of all came the reindeer, looking as he always did, as if some serious
+business was on hand.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where are you going?” asked the boy, who by this time was tired of wild
+cherries, and was thinking of his dinner.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am invited to the wedding,” answered the reindeer, “and the miller has
+begged me on no account to fail him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“O fool!” cried the boy, “have you no sense at all? Don’t you know that when
+you get there they will hold you fast, for neither beast nor bird is as strong
+or as swift as you?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That is exactly why I am quite safe,” replied the reindeer. “I am so strong
+that no one can bind me, and so swift that not even an arrow can catch me. So,
+goodbye for the present, you will soon see me back.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But none of the animals that went to the miller’s wedding ever came back. And
+because they were self-willed and conceited, and would not listen to good
+advice, they and their children have been the servants of men to this very day.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Lapplandische Mahrchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap19"></a>
+Fortune and the Wood-Cutter</h2>
+
+<p>
+Several hundreds of years ago there lived in a forest a wood-cutter and his
+wife and children. He was very poor, having only his axe to depend upon, and
+two mules to carry the wood he cut to the neighbouring town; but he worked
+hard, and was always out of bed by five o’clock, summer and winter.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This went on for twenty years, and though his sons were now grown up, and went
+with their father to the forest, everything seemed to go against them, and they
+remained as poor as ever. In the end the wood-cutter lost heart, and said to
+himself:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What is the good of working like this if I never am a penny the richer at the
+end? I shall go to the forest no more! And perhaps, if I take to my bed, and do
+not run after Fortune, one day she may come to me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the next morning he did not get up, and when six o’clock struck, his wife,
+who had been cleaning the house, went to see what was the matter.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Are you ill?” she asked wonderingly, surprised at not finding him dressed.
+“The cock has crowed ever so often. It is high time for you to get up.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why should I get up?” asked the man, without moving.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why? to go to the forest, of course.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes; and when I have toiled all day I hardly earn enough to give us one meal.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But what can we do, my poor husband?” said she. “It is just a trick of
+Fortune’s, who would never smile upon us.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, I have had my fill of Fortune’s tricks,” cried he. “If she wants me she
+can find me here. But I have done with the wood for ever.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“My dear husband, grief has driven you mad! Do you think Fortune will come to
+anybody who does not go after her? Dress yourself, and saddle the mules, and
+begin your work. Do you know that there is not a morsel of bread in the house?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I don’t care if there isn’t, and I am not going to the forest. It is no use
+your talking; nothing will make me change my mind.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The distracted wife begged and implored in vain; her husband persisted in
+staying in bed, and at last, in despair, she left him and went back to her
+work.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+An hour or two later a man from the nearest village knocked at her door, and
+when she opened it, he said to her: “Good-morning, mother. I have got a job to
+do, and I want to know if your husband will lend me your mules, as I see he is
+not using them, and can lend me a hand himself?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“He is upstairs; you had better ask him,” answered the woman. And the man went
+up, and repeated his request.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am sorry, neighbour, but I have sworn not to leave my bed, and nothing will
+make me break my vow.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, then, will you lend me your two mules? I will pay you something for
+them.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Certainly, neighbour. Take them and welcome.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the man left the house, and leading the mules from the stable, placed two
+sacks on their back, and drove them to a field where he had found a hidden
+treasure. He filled the sacks with the money, though he knew perfectly well
+that it belonged to the sultan, and was driving them quietly home again, when
+he saw two soldiers coming along the road. Now the man was aware that if he was
+caught he would be condemned to death, so he fled back into the forest. The
+mules, left to themselves, took the path that led to their master’s stable.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The wood-cutter’s wife was looking out of the window when the mules drew up
+before the door, so heavily laden that they almost sank under their burdens.
+She lost no time in calling her husband, who was still lying in bed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Quick! quick! get up as fast as you can. Our two mules have returned with
+sacks on their backs, so heavily laden with something or other that the poor
+beasts can hardly stand up.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Wife, I have told you a dozen times already that I am not going to get up. Why
+can’t you leave me in peace?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As she found she could get no help from her husband the woman took a large
+knife and cut the cords which bound the sacks on to the animals’ backs. They
+fell at once to the ground, and out poured a rain of gold pieces, till the
+little court-yard shone like the sun.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“A treasure!” gasped the woman, as soon as she could speak from surprise. “A
+treasure!” And she ran off to tell her husband.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Get up! get up!” she cried. “You were quite right not to go to the forest, and
+to await Fortune in your bed; she has come at last! Our mules have returned
+home laden with all the gold in the world, and it is now lying in the court. No
+one in the whole country can be as rich as we are!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In an instant the wood-cutter was on his feet, and running to the court, where
+he paused dazzled by the glitter of the coins which lay around him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You see, my dear wife, that I was right,” he said at last. “Fortune is so
+capricious, you can never count on her. Run after her, and she is sure to fly
+from you; stay still, and she is sure to come.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Traditions Populaires de l’Asie Mineure.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap20"></a>
+The Enchanted Head</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time an old woman lived in a small cottage near the sea with her
+two daughters. They were very poor, and the girls seldom left the house, as
+they worked all day long making veils for the ladies to wear over their faces,
+and every morning, when the veils were finished, the other took them over the
+bridge and sold them in the city. Then she bought the food that they needed for
+the day, and returned home to do her share of veil-making.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One morning the old woman rose even earlier than usual, and set off for the
+city with her wares. She was just crossing the bridge when, suddenly, she
+knocked up against a human head, which she had never seen there before. The
+woman started back in horror; but what was her surprise when the head spoke,
+exactly as if it had a body joined on to it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Take me with you, good mother!” it said imploringly; “take me with you back to
+your house.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At the sound of these words the poor woman nearly went mad with terror. Have
+that horrible thing always at home? Never! never! And she turned and ran back
+as fast as she could, not knowing that the head was jumping, dancing, and
+rolling after her. But when she reached her own door it bounded in before her,
+and stopped in front of the fire, begging and praying to be allowed to stay.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All that day there was no food in the house, for the veils had not been sold,
+and they had no money to buy anything with. So they all sat silent at their
+work, inwardly cursing the head which was the cause of their misfortunes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When evening came, and there was no sign of supper, the head spoke, for the
+first time that day:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Good mother, does no one ever eat here? During all the hours I have spent in
+your house not a creature has touched anything.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No,” answered the old woman, “we are not eating anything.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“And why not, good mother?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Because we have no money to buy any food.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Is it your custom never to eat?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, for every morning I go into the city to sell my veils, and with the few
+shillings I get for them I buy all we want. To-day I did not cross the bridge,
+so of course I had nothing for food.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Then I am the cause of your having gone hungry all day?” asked the head.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, you are,” answered the old woman.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, then, I will give you money and plenty of it, if you will only do as I
+tell you. In an hour, as the clock strikes twelve, you must be on the bridge at
+the place where you met me. When you get there call out ‘Ahmed,’ three times,
+as loud as you can. Then a negro will appear, and you must say to him: ‘The
+head, your master, desires you to open the trunk, and to give me the green
+purse which you will find in it.’”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Very well, my lord,” said the old woman, “I will set off at once for the
+bridge.” And wrapping her veil round her she went out.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Midnight was striking as she reached the spot where she had met the head so
+many hours before.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ahmed! Ahmed! Ahmed!” cried she, and immediately a huge negro, as tall as a
+giant, stood on the bridge before her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What do you want?” asked he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The head, your master, desires you to open the trunk, and to give me the green
+purse which you will find in it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will be back in a moment, good mother,” said he. And three minutes later he
+placed a purse full of sequins in the old woman’s hand.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+No one can imagine the joy of the whole family at the sight of all this wealth.
+The tiny, tumble-down cottage was rebuilt, the girls had new dresses, and their
+mother ceased selling veils. It was such a new thing to them to have money to
+spend, that they were not as careful as they might have been, and by-and-by
+there was not a single coin left in the purse. When this happened their hearts
+sank within them, and their faces fell.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Have you spent your fortune?” asked the head from its corner, when it saw how
+sad they looked. “Well, then, go at midnight, good mother, to the bridge, and
+call out ‘Mahomet!’ three times, as loud as you can. A negro will appear in
+answer, and you must tell him to open the trunk, and to give you the red purse
+which he will find there.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The old woman did not need twice telling, but set off at once for the bridge.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Mahomet! Mahomet! Mahomet!” cried she, with all her might; and in an instant a
+negro, still larger than the last, stood before her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What do you want?” asked he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The head, your master, bids you open the trunk, and to give me the red purse
+which you will find in it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Very well, good mother, I will do so,” answered the negro, and, the moment
+after he had vanished, he reappeared with the purse in his hand.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This time the money seemed so endless that the old woman built herself a new
+house, and filled it with the most beautiful things that were to be found in
+the shops. Her daughters were always wrapped in veils that looked as if they
+were woven out of sunbeams, and their dresses shone with precious stones. The
+neighbours wondered where all this sudden wealth had sprung from, but nobody
+knew about the head.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Good mother,” said the head, one day, “this morning you are to go to the city
+and ask the sultan to give me his daughter for my bride.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Do what?” asked the old woman in amazement. “How can I tell the sultan that a
+head without a body wishes to become his son-in-law? They will think that I am
+mad, and I shall be hooted from the palace and stoned by the children.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Do as I bid you,” replied the head; “it is my will.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The old woman was afraid to say anything more, and, putting on her richest
+clothes, started for the palace. The sultan granted her an audience at once,
+and, in a trembling voice, she made her request.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Are you mad, old woman?” said the sultan, staring at her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The wooer is powerful, O Sultan, and nothing is impossible to him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Is that true?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is, O Sultan; I swear it,” answered she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Then let him show his power by doing three things, and I will give him my
+daughter.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Command, O gracious prince,” said she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Do you see that hill in front of the palace?” asked the sultan.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I see it,” answered she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, in forty days the man who has sent you must make that hill vanish, and
+plant a beautiful garden in its place. That is the first thing. Now go, and
+tell him what I say.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the old woman returned and told the head the sultan’s first condition.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is well,” he replied; and said no more about it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For thirty-nine days the head remained in its favourite corner. The old woman
+thought that the task set before was beyond his powers, and that no more would
+be heard about the sultan’s daughter. But on the thirty-ninth evening after her
+visit to the palace, the head suddenly spoke.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Good mother,” he said, “you must go to-night to the bridge, and when you are
+there cry ‘Ali! Ali! Ali!’ as loud as you can. A negro will appear before you,
+and you will tell him that he is to level the hill, and to make, in its place,
+the most beautiful garden that ever was seen.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will go at once,” answered she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It did not take her long to reach the bridge which led to the city, and she
+took up her position on the spot where she had first seen the head, and called
+loudly “Ali! Ali! Ali.” In an instant a negro appeared before her, of such a
+huge size that the old woman was half frightened; but his voice was mild and
+gentle as he said: “What is it that you want?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Your master bids you level the hill that stands in front of the sultan’s
+palace and in its place to make the most beautiful garden in the world.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Tell my master he shall be obeyed,” replied Ali; “it shall be done this
+moment.” And the old woman went home and gave Ali’s message to the head.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Meanwhile the sultan was in his palace waiting till the fortieth day should
+dawn, and wondering that not one spadeful of earth should have been dug out of
+the hill.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If that old woman has been playing me a trick,” thought he, “I will hang her!
+And I will put up a gallows to-morrow on the hill itself.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But when to-morrow came there was no hill, and when the sultan opened his eyes
+he could not imagine why the room was so much lighter than usual, and what was
+the reason of the sweet smell of flowers that filled the air.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Can there be a fire?” he said to himself; “the sun never came in at this
+window before. I must get up and see.” So he rose and looked out, and
+underneath him flowers from every part of the world were blooming, and creepers
+of every colour hung in chains from tree to tree.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then he remembered. “Certainly that old woman’s son is a clever magician!”
+cried he; “I never met anyone as clever as that. What shall I give him to do
+next? Let me think. Ah! I know.” And he sent for the old woman, who by the
+orders of the head, was waiting below.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Your son has carried out my wishes very nicely,” he said. “The garden is
+larger and better than that of any other king. But when I walk across it I
+shall need some place to rest on the other side. In forty days he must build me
+a palace, in which every room shall be filled with different furniture from a
+different country, and each more magnificent than any room that ever was seen.”
+And having said this he turned round and went away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh! he will never be able to do that,” thought she; “it is much more difficult
+than the hill.” And she walked home slowly, with her head bent.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, what am I to do next?” asked the head cheerfully. And the old woman told
+her story.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Dear me! is that all? why it is child’s play,” answered the head; and troubled
+no more about the palace for thirty-nine days. Then he told the old woman to go
+to the bridge and call for Hassan.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What do you want, old woman?” asked Hassan, when he appeared, for he was not
+as polite as the others had been.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Your master commands you to build the most magnificent palace that ever was
+seen,” replied she; “and you are to place it on the borders of the new garden.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“He shall be obeyed,” answered Hassan. And when the sultan woke he saw, in the
+distance, a palace built of soft blue marble, resting on slender pillars of
+pure gold.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That old woman’s son is certainly all-powerful,” cried he; “what shall I bid
+him do now?” And after thinking some time he sent for the old woman, who was
+expecting the summons.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The garden is wonderful, and the palace the finest in the world,” said he, “so
+fine, that my servants would cut but a sorry figure in it. Let your son fill it
+with forty slaves whose beauty shall be unequalled, all exactly like each
+other, and of the same height.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This time the king thought he had invented something totally impossible, and
+was quite pleased with himself for his cleverness.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Thirty-nine days passed, and at midnight on the night of the last the old woman
+was standing on the bridge.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Bekir! Bekir! Bekir!” cried she. And a negro appeared, and inquired what she
+wanted.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The head, your master, bids you find forty slaves of unequalled beauty, and of
+the same height, and place them in the sultan’s palace on the other side of the
+garden.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And when, on the morning of the fortieth day, the sultan went to the blue
+palace, and was received by the forty slaves, he nearly lost his wits from
+surprise.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will assuredly give my daughter to the old woman’s son,” thought he. “If I
+were to search all the world through I could never find a more powerful
+son-in-law.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And when the old woman entered his presence he informed her that he was ready
+to fulfil his promise, and she was to bid her son appear at the palace without
+delay.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This command did not at all please the old woman, though, of course, she made
+no objections to the sultan.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“All has gone well so far,” she grumbled, when she told her story to the head,”
+but what do you suppose the sultan will say, when he sees his daughter’s
+husband?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Never mind what he says! Put me on a silver dish and carry me to the palace.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So it was done, though the old woman’s heart beat as she laid down the dish
+with the head upon it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At the sight before him the king flew into a violent rage.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will never marry my daughter to such a monster,” he cried. But the princess
+placed her head gently on his arm.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You have given your word, my father, and you cannot break it,” said she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But, my child, it is impossible for you to marry such a being,” exclaimed the
+sultan.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, I will marry him. He had a beautiful head, and I love him already.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the marriage was celebrated, and great feasts were held in the palace,
+though the people wept tears to think of the sad fate of their beloved
+princess. But when the merry-making was done, and the young couple were alone,
+the head suddenly disappeared, or, rather, a body was added to it, and one of
+the handsomest young men that ever was seen stood before the princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“A wicked fairy enchanted me at my birth,” he said, “and for the rest of the
+world I must always be a head only. But for you, and you only, I am a man like
+other men.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“And that is all I care about,” said the princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Traditions populaires de toutes les nations (Asie Mineure)].
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap21"></a>
+The Sister of the Sun</h2>
+
+<p>
+A long time ago there lived a young prince whose favourite playfellow was the
+son of the gardener who lived in the grounds of the palace. The king would have
+preferred his choosing a friend from the pages who were brought up at court;
+but the prince would have nothing to say to them, and as he was a spoilt child,
+and allowed his way in all things, and the gardener’s boy was quiet and
+well-behaved, he was suffered to be in the palace, morning, noon, and night.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The game the children loved the best was a match at archery, for the king had
+given them two bows exactly alike, and they would spend whole days in trying to
+see which could shoot the highest. This is always very dangerous, and it was a
+great wonder they did not put their eyes out; but somehow or other they managed
+to escape.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One morning, when the prince had done his lessons, he ran out to call his
+friend, and they both hurried off to the lawn which was their usual playground.
+They took their bows out of the little hut where their toys were kept, and
+began to see which could shoot the highest. At last they happened to let fly
+their arrows both together, and when they fell to earth again the tail feather
+of a golden hen was found sticking in one. Now the question began to arise
+whose was the lucky arrow, for they were both alike, and look as closely as you
+would you could see no difference between them. The prince declared that the
+arrow was his, and the gardener’s boy was quite sure it was HIS—and on this
+occasion he was perfectly right; but, as they could not decide the matter, they
+went straight to the king.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the king had heard the story, he decided that the feather belonged to his
+son; but the other boy would not listen to this and claimed the feather for
+himself. At length the king’s patience gave way, and he said angrily:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Very well; if you are so sure that the feather is yours, yours it shall be;
+only you will have to seek till you find a golden hen with a feather missing
+from her tail. And if you fail to find her your head will be the forfeit.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The boy had need of all his courage to listen silently to the king’s words. He
+had no idea where the golden hen might be, or even, if he discovered that, how
+he was to get to her. But there was nothing for it but to do the king’s
+bidding, and he felt that the sooner he left the palace the better. So he went
+home and put some food into a bag, and then set forth, hoping that some
+accident might show him which path to take.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After walking for several hours he met a fox, who seemed inclined to be
+friendly, and the boy was so glad to have anyone to talk to that he sat down
+and entered into conversation.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where are you going?” asked the fox.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I have got to find a golden hen who has lost a feather out of her tail,”
+answered the boy; “but I don’t know where she lives or how I shall catch her!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I can show you the way!” said the fox, who was really very good-natured.
+“Far towards the east, in that direction, lives a beautiful maiden who is
+called ‘The Sister of the Sun.’ She has three golden hens in her house. Perhaps
+the feather belongs to one of them.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The boy was delighted at this news, and they walked on all day together, the
+fox in front, and the boy behind. When evening came they lay down to sleep, and
+put the knapsack under their heads for a pillow.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Suddenly, about midnight, the fox gave a low whine, and drew nearer to his
+bedfellow. “Cousin,” he whispered very low, “there is someone coming who will
+take the knapsack away from me. Look over there!” And the boy, peeping through
+the bushes, saw a man.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I don’t think he will rob us!” said the boy; and when the man drew near,
+he told them his story, which so much interested the stranger that he asked
+leave to travel with them, as he might be of some use. So when the sun rose
+they set out again, the fox in front as before, the man and boy following.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After some hours they reached the castle of the Sister of the Sun, who kept the
+golden hens among her treasures. They halted before the gate and took counsel
+as to which of them should go in and see the lady herself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I think it would be best for me to enter and steal the hens,” said the fox;
+but this did not please the boy at all.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, it is my business, so it is right that I should go,” answered he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You will find it a very difficult matter to get hold of the hens,” replied the
+fox.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, nothing is likely to happen to me,” returned the boy.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, go then,” said the fox, “but be careful not to make any mistake. Steal
+only the hen which has the feather missing from her tail, and leave the others
+alone.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The man listened, but did not interfere, and the boy entered the court of the
+palace.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He soon spied the three hens strutting proudly about, though they were really
+anxiously wondering if there were not some grains lying on the ground that they
+might be glad to eat. And as the last one passed by him, he saw she had one
+feather missing from her tail.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this sight the youth darted forward and seized the hen by the neck so that
+she could not struggle. Then, tucking her comfortably under his arm, he made
+straight for the gate. Unluckily, just as he was about to go through it he
+looked back and caught a glimpse of wonderful splendours from an open door of
+the palace. “After all, there is no hurry,” he said to himself; “I may as well
+see something now I AM here,” and turned back, forgetting all about the hen,
+which escaped from under his arm, and ran to join her sisters.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He was so much fascinated by the sight of all the beautiful things which peeped
+through the door that he scarcely noticed that he had lost the prize he had
+won; and he did not remember there was such a thing as a hen in the world when
+he beheld the Sister of the Sun sleeping on a bed before him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For some time he stood staring; then he came to himself with a start, and
+feeling that he had no business there, softly stole away, and was fortunate
+enough to recapture the hen, which he took with him to the gate. On the
+threshold he stopped again. “Why should I not look at the Sister of the Sun?”
+he thought to himself; “she is asleep, and will never know.” And he turned back
+for the second time and entered the chamber, while the hen wriggled herself
+free as before. When he had gazed his fill he went out into the courtyard and
+picked up his hen who was seeking for corn.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As he drew near the gate he paused. “Why did I not give her a kiss?” he said to
+himself; “I shall never kiss any woman so beautiful.” And he wrung his hands
+with regret, so that the hen fell to the ground and ran away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But I can do it still!” he cried with delight, and he rushed back to the
+chamber and kissed the sleeping maiden on the forehead. But, alas! when he came
+out again he found that the hen had grown so shy that she would not let him
+come near her. And, worse than that, her sisters began to cluck so loud that
+the Sister of the Sun was awakened by the noise. She jumped up in haste from
+her bed, and going to the door she said to the boy:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You shall never, never, have my hen till you bring me back my sister who was
+carried off by a giant to his castle, which is a long way off.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Slowly and sadly the youth left the palace and told his story to his friends,
+who were waiting outside the gate, how he had actually held the hen three times
+in his arms and had lost her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I knew that we should not get off so easily,” said the fox, shaking his head;
+“but there is no more time to waste. Let us set off at once in search of the
+sister. Luckily, I know the way.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They walked on for many days, till at length the fox, who, as usual, was going
+first, stopped suddenly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The giant’s castle is not far now,” he said, “but when we reach it you two
+must remain outside while I go and fetch the princess. Directly I bring her out
+you must both catch hold of her tight, and get away as fast as you can; while I
+return to the castle and talk to the giants—for there are many of them—so that
+they may not notice the escape of the princess.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+A few minutes later they arrived at the castle, and the fox, who had often been
+there before, slipped in without difficulty. There were several giants, both
+young and old, in the hall, and they were all dancing round the princess. As
+soon as they saw the fox they cried out: “Come and dance too, old fox; it is a
+long time since we have seen you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the fox stood up, and did his steps with the best of them; but after a while
+he stopped and said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I know a charming new dance that I should like to show you; but it can only be
+done by two people. If the princess will honour me for a few minutes, you will
+soon see how it is done.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, that is delightful; we want something new,” answered they, and placed the
+princess between the outstretched arms of the fox. In one instant he had
+knocked over the great stand of lights that lighted the hall, and in the
+darkness had borne the princess to the gate. His comrades seized hold of her,
+as they had been bidden, and the fox was back again in the hall before anyone
+had missed him. He found the giants busy trying to kindle a fire and get some
+light; but after a bit someone cried out:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where is the princess?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Here, in my arms,” replied the fox. “Don’t be afraid; she is quite safe.” And
+he waited until he thought that his comrades had gained a good start, and put
+at least five or six mountains between themselves and the giants. Then he
+sprang through the door, calling, as he went: “The maiden is here; take her if
+you can!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At these words the giants understood that their prize had escaped, and they ran
+after the fox as fast as their great legs could carry them, thinking that they
+should soon come up with the fox, who they supposed had the princess on his
+back. The fox, on his side, was far too clever to choose the same path that his
+friends had taken, but would in and out of the forest, till at last even HE was
+tired out, and fell fast asleep under a tree. Indeed, he was so exhausted with
+his day’s work that he never heard the approach of the giants, and their hands
+were already stretched out to seize his tail when his eyes opened, and with a
+tremendous bound he was once more beyond their reach. All the rest of the night
+the fox ran and ran; but when bright red spread over the east, he stopped and
+waited till the giants were close upon him. Then he turned, and said quietly:
+“Look, there is the Sister of the Sun!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The giants raised their eyes all at once, and were instantly turned into
+pillars of stone. The fox then made each pillar a low bow, and set off to join
+his friends.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He knew a great many short cuts across the hills, so it was not long before he
+came up with them, and all four travelled night and day till they reached the
+castle of the Sister of the Sun. What joy and feasting there was throughout the
+palace at the sight of the princess whom they had mourned as dead! and they
+could not make enough of the boy who had gone through such dangers in order to
+rescue her. The golden hen was given to him at once, and, more than that, the
+Sister of the Sun told him that, in a little time, when he was a few years
+older, she would herself pay a visit to his home and become his wife. The boy
+could hardly believe his ears when he heard what was in store for him, for his
+was the most beautiful princess in all the world; and however thick the
+darkness might be, it fled away at once from the light of a star on her
+forehead.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the boy set forth on his journey home, with his friends for company; his
+heart full of gladness when he thought of the promise of the princess. But, one
+by one, his comrades dropped off at the places where they had first met him,
+and he was quite alone when he reached his native town and the gates of the
+palace. With the golden hen under his arm he presented himself before the king,
+and told his adventures, and how he was going to have for a wife a princess so
+wonderful and unlike all other princesses, that the star on her forehead could
+turn night into day. The king listened silently, and when the boy had done, he
+said quietly: “If I find that your story is not true I will have you thrown
+into a cask of pitch.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is true—every word of it,” answered the boy; and went on to tell that the
+day and even the hour were fixed when his bride was to come and seek him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But as the time drew near, and nothing was heard of the princess, the youth
+became anxious and uneasy, especially when it came to his ears that the great
+cask was being filled with pitch, and that sticks were laid underneath to make
+a fire to boil it with. All day long the boy stood at the window, looking over
+the sea by which the princess must travel; but there were no signs of her, not
+even the tiniest white sail. And, as he stood, soldiers came and laid hands on
+him, and led him up to the cask, where a big fire was blazing, and the horrid
+black pitch boiling and bubbling over the sides. He looked and shuddered, but
+there was no escape; so he shut his eyes to avoid seeing.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The word was given for him to mount the steps which led to the top of the cask,
+when, suddenly, some men were seen running with all their might, crying as they
+went that a large ship with its sails spread was making straight for the city.
+No one knew what the ship was, or whence it came; but the king declared that he
+would not have the boy burned before its arrival, there would always be time
+enough for that.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At length the vessel was safe in port, and a whisper went through the watching
+crowd that on board was the Sister of the Sun, who had come to marry the young
+peasant as she had promised. In a few moments more she had landed, and desired
+to be shown the way to the cottage which her bridegroom had so often described
+to her; and whither he had been led back by the king’s order at the first sign
+of the ship.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Don’t you know me?” asked the Sister of the Sun, bending over him where he
+lay, almost driven out of his senses with terror.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, no; I don’t know you,” answered the youth, without raising his eyes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Kiss me,” said the Sister of the Sun; and the youth obeyed her, but still
+without looking up.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Don’t you know me NOW?” asked she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, I don’t know you—I don’t know you,” he replied, with the manner of a man
+whom fear had driven mad.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this the Sister of the Sun grew rather frightened, and beginning at the
+beginning, she told him the story of his meeting with her, and how she had come
+a long way in order to marry him. And just as she had finished in walked the
+king, to see if what the boy had said was really true. But hardly had he opened
+the door of the cottage when he was almost blinded by the light that filled it;
+and he remembered what he had been told about the star on the forehead of the
+princess. He staggered back as if he had been struck, then a curious feeling
+took hold of him, which he had never felt before, and falling on his knees
+before the Sister of the Sun, he implored her to give up all thought of the
+peasant boy, and to share his throne. But she laughed, and said she had a finer
+throne of her own, if she wanted to sit on it, and that she was free to please
+herself, and would have no husband but the boy whom she would never have seen
+except for the king himself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I shall marry him to-morrow,” ended she; and ordered the preparations to be
+set on foot at once.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the next day came, however, the bridegroom’s father informed the princess
+that, by the law of the land, the marriage must take place in the presence of
+the king; but he hoped his majesty would not long delay his arrival. An hour or
+two passed, and everyone was waiting and watching, when at last the sound of
+trumpets was heard and a grand procession was seen marching up the street. A
+chair covered with velvet had been made ready for the king, and he took his
+seat upon it, and, looking round upon the assembled company, he said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I have no wish to forbid this marriage; but, before I can allow it to be
+celebrated, the bridegroom must prove himself worthy of such a bride by
+fulfilling three tasks. And the first is that in a single day he must cut down
+every tree in an entire forest.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The youth stood aghast as the king’s words. He had never cut down a tree in his
+life, and had not the least idea how to begin. And as for a whole forest—! But
+the princess saw what was passing in his mind, and whispered to him:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Don’t be afraid. In my ship you will find an axe, which you must carry off to
+the forest. When you have cut down one tree with it just say: ‘So let the
+forest fall,’ and in an instant all the trees will be on the ground. But pick
+up three chips of the tree you felled, and put them in your pocket.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And the young man did exactly as he was bid, and soon returned with the three
+chips safe in his coat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The following morning the princess declared that she had been thinking about
+the matter, and that, as she was not a subject of the king, she saw no reason
+why she should be bound by his laws; and she meant to be married that very day.
+But the bridegroom’s father told her that it was all very well for her to talk
+like that, but it was quite different for his son, who would pay with his head
+for any disobedience to the king’s commands. However, in consideration of what
+the youth had done the day before, he hoped his majesty’s heart might be
+softened, especially as he had sent a message that they might expect him at
+once. With this the bridal pair had to be content, and be as patient as they
+could till the king’s arrival.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He did not keep them long, but they saw by his face that nothing good awaited
+them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The marriage cannot take place,” he said shortly, “till the youth has joined
+to their roots all the trees he cut down yesterday.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This sounded much more difficult than what he had done before, and he turned in
+despair to the Sister of the Sun.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is all right,” she whispered encouragingly. “Take this water and sprinkle
+it on one of the fallen trees, and say to it: ‘So let all the trees of the
+forest stand upright,’ and in a moment they will be erect again.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And the young man did what he was told, and left the forest looking exactly as
+it had done before.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now, surely, thought the princess, there was no longer any need to put off the
+wedding; and she gave orders that all should be ready for the following day.
+But again the old man interfered, and declared that without the king’s
+permission no marriage could take place. For the third time his majesty was
+sent for, and for the third time he proclaimed that he could not give his
+consent until the bridegroom should have slain a serpent which dwelt in a broad
+river that flowed at the back of the castle. Everyone knew stories of this
+terrible serpent, though no one had actually seen it; but from time to time a
+child strayed from home and never came back, and then mothers would forbid the
+other children to go near the river, which had juicy fruits and lovely flowers
+growing along its banks.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So no wonder the youth trembled and turned pale when he heard what lay before
+him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You will succeed in this also,” whispered the Sister of the Sun, pressing his
+hand, “for in my ship is a magic sword which will cut through everything. Go
+down to the river and unfasten a boat which lies moored there, and throw the
+chips into the water. When the serpent rears up its body you will cut off its
+three heads with one blow of your sword. Then take the tip of each tongue and
+go with it to-morrow morning into the king’s kitchen. If the king himself
+should enter, just say to him: ‘Here are three gifts I offer you in return for
+the services you demanded of me!’ and throw the tips of the serpent’s tongues
+at him, and hasten to the ship as fast as your legs will carry you. But be sure
+you take great care never to look behind you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The young man did exactly what the princess had told him. The three chips which
+he flung into the river became a boat, and, as he steered across the stream,
+the serpent put up its head and hissed loudly. The youth had his sword ready,
+and in another second the three heads were bobbing on the water. Guiding his
+boat till he was beside them, he stooped down and snipped off the ends of the
+tongues, and then rowed back to the other bank. Next morning he carried them
+into the royal kitchen, and when the king entered, as was his custom, to see
+what he was going to have for dinner, the bridegroom flung them in his face,
+saying: “Here is a gift for you in return for the services you asked of me.”
+And, opening the kitchen door, he fled to the ship. Unluckily he missed the
+way, and in his excitement ran backwards and forwards, without knowing whither
+he was going. At last, in despair, he looked round, and saw to his amazement
+that both the city and palace had vanished completely. Then he turned his eyes
+in the other direction, and, far, far away, he caught sight of the ship with
+her sails spread, and a fair wind behind her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This dreadful spectacle seemed to take away his senses, and all day long he
+wandered about, without knowing where he was going, till, in the evening, he
+noticed some smoke from a little hut of turf near by. He went straight up to it
+and cried: “O mother, let me come in for pity’s sake!” The old woman who lived
+in the hut beckoned to him to enter, and hardly was he inside when he cried
+again: “O mother, can you tell me anything of the Sister of the Sun?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the woman only shook her head. “No, I know nothing of her,” said she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The young man turned to leave the hut, but the old woman stopped him, and,
+giving him a letter, begged him to carry it to her next eldest sister, saying:
+“If you should get tired on the way, take out the letter and rustle the paper.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This advice surprised the young man a good deal, as he did not see how it could
+help him; but he did not answer, and went down the road without knowing where
+he was going. At length he grew so tired he could walk no more; then he
+remembered what the old woman had said. After he had rustled the leaves only
+once all fatigue disappeared, and he strode over the grass till he came to
+another little turf hut.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Let me in, I pray you, dear mother,” cried he. And the door opened in front of
+him. “Your sister has sent you this letter,” he said, and added quickly: “O
+mother! can you tell me anything of the Sister of the Sun?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, I know nothing of her,” answered she. But as he turned hopelessly away,
+she stopped him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If you happen to pass my eldest sister’s house, will you give her this
+letter?” said she. “And if you should get tired on the road, just take it out
+of your pocket and rustle the paper.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the young man put the letter in his pocket, and walked all day over the
+hills till he reached a little turf hut, exactly like the other two.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Let me in, I pray you, dear mother,” cried he. And as he entered he added:
+“Here is a letter from your sister and—can you tell me anything of the Sister
+of the Sun?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, I can,” answered the old woman. “She lives in the castle on the Banka.
+Her father lost a battle only a few days ago because you had stolen his sword
+from him, and the Sister of the Sun herself is almost dead of grief. But, when
+you see her, stick a pin into the palm of her hand, and suck the drops of blood
+that flow. Then she will grow calmer, and will know you again. Only, beware;
+for before you reach the castle on the Banka fearful things will happen.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He thanked the old woman with tears of gladness for the good news she had given
+him, and continued his journey. But he had not gone very far when, at a turn of
+the road, he met with two brothers, who were quarrelling over a piece of cloth.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“My good men, what are you fighting about?” said he. “That cloth does not look
+worth much!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, it is ragged enough,” answered they, “but it was left us by our father,
+and if any man wraps it round him no one can see him; and we each want it for
+our own.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Let me put it round me for a moment,” said the youth, “and then I will tell
+you whose it ought to be!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The brothers were pleased with this idea, and gave him the stuff; but the
+moment he had thrown it over his shoulder he disappeared as completely as if he
+had never been there at all.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Meanwhile the young man walked briskly along, till he came up with two other
+men, who were disputing over a table-cloth.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What is the matter?” asked he, stopping in front of them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If this cloth is spread on a table,” answered they, “the table is instantly
+covered with the most delicious food; and we each want to have it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Let me try the table-cloth,” said the youth, “and I will tell you whose it
+ought to be.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The two men were quite pleased with this idea, and handed him the cloth. He
+then hastily threw the first piece of stuff round his shoulders and vanished
+from sight, leaving the two men grieving over their own folly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The young man had not walked far before he saw two more men standing by the
+road-side, both grasping the same stout staff, and sometimes one seemed on the
+point of getting it, and sometimes the other.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What are you quarrelling about? You could cut a dozen sticks from the wood
+each just as good as that!” said the young man. And as he spoke the fighters
+both stopped and looked at him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah! you may think so,” said one, “but a blow from one end of this stick will
+kill a man, while a touch from the other end will bring him back to life. You
+won’t easily find another stick like that!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No; that is true,” answered the young man. “Let me just look at it, and I will
+tell you whose it ought to be.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The men were pleased with the idea, and handed him the staff.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is very curious, certainly,” said he; “but which end is it that restores
+people to life? After all, anyone can be killed by a blow from a stick if it is
+only hard enough!” But when he was shown the end he threw the stuff over his
+shoulders and vanished.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last he saw another set of men, who were struggling for the possession of a
+pair of shoes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why can’t you leave that pair of old shoes alone?” said he. “Why, you could
+not walk a yard in them!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, they are old enough,” answered they; “but whoever puts them on and wishes
+himself at a particular place, gets there without going.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That sounds very clever,” said the youth. “Let me try them, and then I shall
+be able to tell you whose they ought to be.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The idea pleased the men, and they handed him the shoes; but the moment they
+were on his feet he cried:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I wish to be in the castle on the Banka!” And before he knew it, he was there,
+and found the Sister of the Sun dying of grief. He knelt down by her side, and
+pulling a pin he stuck it into the palm of her hand, so that a drop of blood
+gushed out. This he sucked, as he had been told to do by the old woman, and
+immediately the princess came to herself, and flung her arms round his neck.
+Then she told him all her story, and what had happened since the ship had
+sailed away without him. “But the worst misfortune of all,” she added, “was a
+battle which my father lost because you had vanished with his magic sword; and
+out of his whole army hardly one man was left.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Show me the battle-field,” said he. And she took him to a wild heath, where
+the dead were lying as they fell, waiting for burial. One by one he touched
+them with the end of his staff, till at length they all stood before him.
+Throughout the kingdom there was nothing but joy; and THIS time the wedding was
+REALLY celebrated. And the bridal pair lived happily in the castle on the Banka
+till they died.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Lapplandische Mahrchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap22"></a>
+The Prince and the Three Fates</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time a little boy was born to a king who ruled over a great country
+through which ran a wide river. The king was nearly beside himself with joy,
+for he had always longed for a son to inherit his crown, and he sent messages
+to beg all the most powerful fairies to come and see this wonderful baby. In an
+hour or two, so many were gathered round the cradle, that the child seemed in
+danger of being smothered; but the king, who was watching the fairies eagerly,
+was disturbed to see them looking grave. “Is there anything the matter?” he
+asked anxiously.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The fairies looked at him, and all shook their heads at once.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“He is a beautiful boy, and it is a great pity; but what IS to happen WILL
+happen,” said they. “It is written in the books of fate that he must die,
+either by a crocodile, or a serpent, or by a dog. If we could save him we
+would; but that is beyond our power.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And so saying they vanished.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For a time the king stood where he was, horror-stricken at what he had heard;
+but, being of a hopeful nature, he began at once to invent plans to save the
+prince from the dreadful doom that awaited him. He instantly sent for his
+master builder, and bade him construct a strong castle on the top of a
+mountain, which should be fitted with the most precious things from the king’s
+own palace, and every kind of toy a child could wish to play with. And,
+besides, he gave the strictest orders that a guard should walk round the castle
+night and day.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For four or five years the baby lived in the castle alone with his nurses,
+taking his airings on the broad terraces, which were surrounded by walls, with
+a moat beneath them, and only a drawbridge to connect them with the outer
+world.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day, when the prince was old enough to run quite fast by himself, he looked
+from the terrace across the moat, and saw a little soft fluffy ball of a dog
+jumping and playing on the other side. Now, of course, all dogs had been kept
+from him for fear that the fairies’ prophecy should come true, and he had never
+even beheld one before. So he turned to the page who was walking behind him,
+and said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What is that funny little thing which is running so fast over there?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That is a dog, prince,” answered the page.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, bring me one like it, and we will see which can run the faster.” And he
+watched the dog till it had disappeared round the corner.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The page was much puzzled to know what to do. He had strict orders to refuse
+the prince nothing; yet he remembered the prophecy, and felt that this was a
+serious matter. At last he thought he had better tell the king the whole story,
+and let him decide the question.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, get him a dog if he wants one,” said the king, “he will only cry his heart
+out if he does not have it.” So a puppy was found, exactly like the other; they
+might have been twins, and perhaps they were.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Years went by, and the boy and the dog played together till the boy grew tall
+and strong. The time came at last when he sent a message to his father, saying:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why do you keep me shut up here, doing nothing? I know all about the prophecy
+that was made at my birth, but I would far rather be killed at once than live
+an idle, useless life here. So give me arms, and let me go, I pray you; me and
+my dog too.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And again the king listened to his wishes, and he and his dog were carried in a
+ship to the other side of the river, which was so broad here it might almost
+have been the sea. A black horse was waiting for him, tied to a tree, and he
+mounted and rode away wherever his fancy took him, the dog always at his heels.
+Never was any prince so happy as he, and he rode and rode till at length he
+came to a king’s palace.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The king who lived in it did not care about looking after his country, and
+seeing that his people lived cheerful and contented lives. He spent his whole
+time in making riddles, and inventing plans which he had much better have let
+alone. At the period when the young prince reached the kingdom he had just
+completed a wonderful house for his only child, a daughter. It had seventy
+windows, each seventy feet from the ground, and he had sent the royal herald
+round the borders of the neighbouring kingdoms to proclaim that whoever could
+climb up the walls to the window of the princess should win her for his wife.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The fame of the princess’s beauty had spread far and wide, and there was no
+lack of princes who wished to try their fortune. Very funny the palace must
+have looked each morning, with the dabs of different colour on the white marble
+as the princes were climbing up the walls. But though some managed to get
+further than others, nobody was anywhere near the top.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They had already been spending several days in this manner when the young
+prince arrived, and as he was pleasant to look upon, and civil to talk to, they
+welcomed him to the house, which had been given to them, and saw that his bath
+was properly perfumed after his long journey. “Where do you come from?” they
+said at last. “And whose son are you?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the young prince had reasons for keeping his own secret, and he answered:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“My father was master of the horse to the king of my country, and after my
+mother died he married another wife. At first all went well, but as soon as she
+had babies of her own she hated me, and I fled, lest she should do me harm.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The hearts of the other young men were touched as soon as they heard this
+story, and they did everything they could think of to make him forget his past
+sorrows.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What are you doing here?” said the youth, one day.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“We spend our whole time climbing up the walls of the palace, trying to reach
+the windows of the princess,” answered the young men; “but, as yet, no one has
+reached within ten feet of them.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, let me try too,” cried the prince; “but to-morrow I will wait and see what
+you do before I begin.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the next day he stood where he could watch the young men go up, and he noted
+the places on the wall that seemed most difficult, and made up his mind that
+when his turn came he would go up some other way.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Day after day he was to be seen watching the wooers, till, one morning, he felt
+that he knew the plan of the walls by heart, and took his place by the side of
+the others. Thanks to what he had learned from the failure of the rest, he
+managed to grasp one little rough projection after another, till at last, to
+the envy of his friends, he stood on the sill of the princess’s window. Looking
+up from below, they saw a white hand stretched forth to draw him in.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then one of the young men ran straight to the king’s palace, and said: “The
+wall has been climbed, and the prize is won!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“By whom?” cried the king, starting up from his throne; “which of the princes
+may I claim as my son-in-law?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The youth who succeeded in climbing to the princess’s window is not a prince
+at all,” answered the young man. “He is the son of the master of the horse to
+the great king who dwells across the river, and he fled from his own country to
+escape from the hatred of his stepmother.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this news the king was very angry, for it had never entered his head that
+anyone BUT a prince would seek to woo his daughter.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Let him go back to the land whence he came,” he shouted in wrath; “does he
+expect me to give my daughter to an exile?” And he began to smash the drinking
+vessels in his fury; indeed, he quite frightened the young man, who ran hastily
+home to his friends, and told the youth what the king had said.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the princess, who was leaning from her window, heard his words and bade the
+messenger go back to the king her father and tell him that she had sworn a vow
+never to eat or drink again if the youth was taken from her. The king was more
+angry than ever when he received this message, and ordered his guards to go at
+once to the palace and put the successful wooer to death; but the princess
+threw herself between him and his murderers.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Lay a finger on him, and I shall be dead before sunset,” said she; and as they
+saw that she meant it, they left the palace, and carried the tale to her
+father.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By this time the king’s anger was dying away, and he began to consider what his
+people would think of him if he broke the promise he had publicly given. So he
+ordered the princess to be brought before him, and the young man also, and when
+they entered the throne room he was so pleased with the noble air of the victor
+that his wrath quite melted away, and he ran to him and embraced him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Tell me who you are?” he asked, when he had recovered himself a little, “for I
+will never believe that you have not royal blood in your veins.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the prince still had his reasons for being silent, and only told the same
+story. However, the king had taken such a fancy to the youth that he said no
+more, and the marriage took place the following day, and great herds of cattle
+and a large estate were given to the young couple.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After a little while the prince said to his wife: “My life is in the hands of
+three creatures—a crocodile, a serpent, and a dog.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, how rash you are!” cried the princess, throwing her arms round his neck.
+“If you know that, how can you have that horrid beast about you? I will give
+orders to have him killed at once.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the prince would not listen to her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Kill my dear little dog, who had been my playfellow since he was a puppy?”
+exclaimed he. “Oh, never would I allow that.” And all that the princess could
+get from him was that he would always wear a sword, and have somebody with him
+when he left the palace.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the prince and princess had been married a few months, the prince heard
+that his stepmother was dead, and his father was old and ill, and longing to
+have his eldest son by his side again. The young man could not remain deaf to
+such a message, and he took a tender farewell of his wife, and set out on his
+journey home. It was a long way, and he was forced to rest often on the road,
+and so it happened that, one night, when he was sleeping in a city on the banks
+of the great river, a huge crocodile came silently up and made its way along a
+passage to the prince’s room. Fortunately one of his guards woke up as it was
+trying to steal past them, and shut the crocodile up in a large hall, where a
+giant watched over it, never leaving the spot except during the night, when the
+crocodile slept. And this went on for more than a month.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now, when the prince found that he was not likely to leave his father’s kingdom
+again, he sent for his wife, and bade the messenger tell her that he would
+await her coming in the town on the banks of the great river. This was the
+reason why he delayed his journey so long, and narrowly escaped being eaten by
+the crocodile. During the weeks that followed the prince amused himself as best
+he could, though he counted the minutes to the arrival of the princess, and
+when she did come, he at once prepared to start for the court. That very night,
+however, while he was asleep, the princess noticed something strange in one of
+the corners of the room. It was a dark patch, and seemed, as she looked, to
+grow longer and longer, and to be moving slowly towards the cushions on which
+the prince was lying. She shrank in terror, but, slight as was the noise, the
+thing heard it, and raised its head to listen. Then she saw it was the long
+flat head of a serpent, and the recollection of the prophecy rushed into her
+mind. Without waking her husband, she glided out of bed, and taking up a heavy
+bowl of milk which stood on a table, laid it on the floor in the path of the
+serpent—for she knew that no serpent in the world can resist milk. She held her
+breath as the snake drew near, and watched it throw up its head again as if it
+was smelling something nice, while its forky tongue darted out greedily. At
+length its eyes fell upon the milk, and in an instant it was lapping it so fast
+that it was a wonder the creature did not choke, for it never took its head
+from the bowl as long as a drop was left in it. After that it dropped on the
+ground and slept heavily. This was what the princess had been waiting for, and
+catching up her husband’s sword, she severed the snake’s head from its body.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The morning after this adventure the prince and princess set out for the king’s
+palace, but found when they reached it, that he was already dead. They gave him
+a magnificent burial, and then the prince had to examine the new laws which had
+been made in his absence, and do a great deal of business besides, till he grew
+quite ill from fatigue, and was obliged to go away to one of his palaces on the
+banks of the river, in order to rest. Here he soon got better, and began to
+hunt, and to shoot wild duck with his bow; and wherever he went, his dog, now
+grown very old, went with him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One morning the prince and his dog were out as usual, and in chasing their game
+they drew near the bank of the river. The prince was running at full speed
+after his dog when he almost fell over something that looked like a log of
+wood, which was lying in his path. To his surprise a voice spoke to him, and he
+saw that the thing which he had taken for a branch was really a crocodile.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You cannot escape from me,” it was saying, when he had gathered his senses
+again. “I am your fate, and wherever you go, and whatever you do, you will
+always find me before you. There is only one means of shaking off my power. If
+you can dig a pit in the dry sand which will remain full of water, my spell
+will be broken. If not death will come to you speedily. I give you this one
+chance. Now go.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The young man walked sadly away, and when he reached the palace he shut himself
+into his room, and for the rest of the day refused to see anyone, not even his
+wife. At sunset, however, as no sound could be heard through the door, the
+princess grew quite frightened, and made such a noise that the prince was
+forced to draw back the bolt and let her come in. “How pale you look,” she
+cried, “has anything hurt you? Tell me, I pray you, what is the matter, for
+perhaps I can help!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the prince told her the whole story, and of the impossible task given him by
+the crocodile.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“How can a sand hole remain full of water?” asked he. “Of course, it will all
+run through. The crocodile called it a ‘chance’; but he might as well have
+dragged me into the river at once. He said truly that I cannot escape him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, if that is all,” cried the princess, “I can set you free myself, for my
+fairy godmother taught me to know the use of plants and in the desert not far
+from here there grows a little four-leaved herb which will keep the water in
+the pit for a whole year. I will go in search of it at dawn, and you can begin
+to dig the hole as soon as you like.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+To comfort her husband, the princess had spoken lightly and gaily; but she knew
+very well she had no light task before her. Still, she was full of courage and
+energy, and determined that, one way or another, her husband should be saved.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was still starlight when she left the palace on a snow-white donkey, and
+rode away from the river straight to the west. For some time she could see
+nothing before her but a flat waste of sand, which became hotter and hotter as
+the sun rose higher and higher. Then a dreadful thirst seized her and the
+donkey, but there was no stream to quench it, and if there had been she would
+hardly have had time to stop, for she still had far to go, and must be back
+before evening, or else the crocodile might declare that the prince had not
+fulfilled his conditions. So she spoke cheering words to her donkey, who brayed
+in reply, and the two pushed steadily on.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Oh! how glad they both were when they caught sight of a tall rock in the
+distance. They forgot that they were thirsty, and that the sun was hot; and the
+ground seemed to fly under their feet, till the donkey stopped of its own
+accord in the cool shadow. But though the donkey might rest the princess could
+not, for the plant, as she knew, grew on the very top of the rock, and a wide
+chasm ran round the foot of it. Luckily she had brought a rope with her, and
+making a noose at one end, she flung it across with all her might. The first
+time it slid back slowly into the ditch, and she had to draw it up, and throw
+it again, but at length the noose caught on something, the princess could not
+see what, and had to trust her whole weight to this little bridge, which might
+snap and let her fall deep down among the rocks. And in that case her death was
+as certain as that of the prince.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But nothing so dreadful happened. The princess got safely to the other side,
+and then became the worst part of her task. As fast as she put her foot on a
+ledge of the rock the stone broke away from under her, and left her in the same
+place as before. Meanwhile the hours were passing, and it was nearly noon.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The heart of the poor princess was filled with despair, but she would not give
+up the struggle. She looked round till she saw a small stone above her which
+seemed rather stronger than the rest, and by only poising her foot lightly on
+those that lay between, she managed by a great effort to reach it. In this way,
+with torn and bleeding hands, she gained the top; but here such a violent wind
+was blowing that she was almost blinded with dust, and was obliged to throw
+herself on the ground, and feel about after the precious herb.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For a few terrible moments she thought that the rock was bare, and that her
+journey had been to no purpose. Feel where she would, there was nothing but
+grit and stones, when, suddenly, her fingers touched something soft in a
+crevice. It was a plant, that was clear; but was it the right one? See she
+could not, for the wind was blowing more fiercely than ever, so she lay where
+she was and counted the leaves. One, two, three—yes! yes! there were four! And
+plucking a leaf she held it safe in her hand while she turned, almost stunned
+by the wind, to go down the rock.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When once she was safely over the side all became still in a moment, and she
+slid down the rock so fast that it was only a wonder that she did not land in
+the chasm. However, by good luck, she stopped quite close to her rope bridge
+and was soon across it. The donkey brayed joyfully at the sight of her, and set
+off home at his best speed, never seeming to know that the earth under his feet
+was nearly as hot as the sun above him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+On the bank of the great river he halted, and the princess rushed up to where
+the prince was standing by the pit he had digged in the dry sand, with a huge
+water pot beside it. A little way off the crocodile lay blinking in the sun,
+with his sharp teeth and whity-yellow jaws wide open.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At a signal from the princess the prince poured the water in the hole, and the
+moment it reached the brim the princess flung in the four-leaved plant. Would
+the charm work, or would the water trickle away slowly through the sand, and
+the prince fall a victim to that horrible monster? For half an hour they stood
+with their eyes rooted to the spot, but the hole remained as full as at the
+beginning, with the little green leaf floating on the top. Then the prince
+turned with a shout of triumph, and the crocodile sulkily plunged into the
+river.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince had escape for ever the second of his three fates!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He stood there looking after the crocodile, and rejoicing that he was free,
+when he was startled by a wild duck which flew past them, seeking shelter among
+the rushes that bordered the edge of the stream. In another instant his dog
+dashed by in hot pursuit, and knocked heavily against his master’s legs. The
+prince staggered, lost his balance and fell backwards into the river, where the
+mud and the rushes caught him and held him fast. He shrieked for help to his
+wife, who came running; and luckily brought her rope with her. The poor old dog
+was drowned, but the prince was pulled to shore. “My wife,” he said, “has been
+stronger than my fate.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Adapted from Les Contes Populaires de l’Egypte Ancienne.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap23"></a>
+The Fox and the Lapp</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time a fox lay peeping out of his hole, watching the road that ran
+by at a little distance, and hoping to see something that might amuse him, for
+he was feeling very dull and rather cross. For a long while he watched in vain;
+everything seemed asleep, and not even a bird stirred overhead. The fox grew
+crosser than ever, and he was just turning away in disgust from his place when
+he heard the sound of feet coming over the snow. He crouched eagerly down at
+the edge of the road and said to himself: “I wonder what would happen if I were
+to pretend to be dead! This is a man driving a reindeer sledge, I know the
+tinkling of the harness. And at any rate I shall have an adventure, and that is
+always something!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So he stretched himself out by the side of the road, carefully choosing a spot
+where the driver could not help seeing him, yet where the reindeer would not
+tread on him; and all fell out just as he had expected. The sledge-driver
+pulled up sharply, as his eyes lighted on the beautiful animal lying stiffly
+beside him, and jumping out he threw the fox into the bottom of the sledge,
+where the goods he was carrying were bound tightly together by ropes. The fox
+did not move a muscle though his bones were sore from the fall, and the driver
+got back to his seat again and drove on merrily.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But before they had gone very far, the fox, who was near the edge, contrived to
+slip over, and when the Laplander saw him stretched out on the snow he pulled
+up his reindeer and put the fox into one of the other sledges that was fastened
+behind, for it was market-day at the nearest town, and the man had much to
+sell.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They drove on a little further, when some noise in the forest made the man turn
+his head, just in time to see the fox fall with a heavy thump on to the frozen
+snow. “That beast is bewitched!” he said to himself, and then he threw the fox
+into the last sledge of all, which had a cargo of fishes. This was exactly what
+the cunning creature wanted, and he wriggled gently to the front and bit the
+cord which tied the sledge to the one before it so that it remained standing in
+the middle of the road.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now there were so many sledges that the Lapp did not notice for a long while
+that one was missing; indeed, he would have entered the town without knowing if
+snow had not suddenly begun to fall. Then he got down to secure more firmly the
+cloths that kept his goods dry, and going to the end of the long row,
+discovered that the sledge containing the fish and the fox was missing. He
+quickly unharnessed one of his reindeer and rode back along the way he had
+come, to find the sledge standing safe in the middle of the road; but as the
+fox had bitten off the cord close to the noose there was no means of moving it
+away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The fox meanwhile was enjoying himself mightily. As soon as he had loosened the
+sledge, he had taken his favourite fish from among the piles neatly arranged
+for sale, and had trotted off to the forest with it in his mouth. By-and-by he
+met a bear, who stopped and said: “Where did you find that fish, Mr. Fox?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, not far off,” answered he; “I just stuck my tail in the stream close by
+the place where the elves dwell, and the fish hung on to it of itself.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Dear me,” snarled the bear, who was hungry and not in a good temper, “if the
+fish hung on to your tail, I suppose he will hang on to mine.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, certainly, grandfather,” replied the fox, “if you have patience to suffer
+what I suffered.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Of course I can,” replied the bear, “what nonsense you talk! Show me the way.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the fox led him to the bank of a stream, which, being in a warm place, had
+only lightly frozen in places, and was at this moment glittering in the spring
+sunshine.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The elves bathe here,” he said, “and if you put in your tail the fish will
+catch hold of it. But it is no use being in a hurry, or you will spoil
+everything.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then he trotted off, but only went out of sight of the bear, who stood still on
+the bank with his tail deep in the water. Soon the sun set and it grew very
+cold and the ice formed rapidly, and the bear’s tail was fixed as tight as if a
+vice had held it; and when the fox saw that everything had happened just as he
+had planned it, he called out loudly:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Be quick, good people, and come with your bows and spears. A bear has been
+fishing in your brook!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And in a moment the whole place was full of little creatures each one with a
+tiny bow and a spear hardly big enough for a baby; but both arrows and spears
+could sting, as the bear knew very well, and in his fright he gave such a tug
+to his tail that it broke short off, and he rolled away into the forest as fast
+as his legs could carry him. At this sight the fox held his sides for laughing,
+and then scampered away in another direction. By-and-by he came to a fir tree,
+and crept into a hole under the root. After that he did something very strange.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Taking one of his hind feet between his two front paws, he said softly:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What would you do, my foot, if someone was to betray me?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I would run so quickly that he should not catch you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What would you do, mine ear, if someone was to betray me?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I would listen so hard that I should hear all his plans.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What would you do, my nose, if someone was to betray me?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I would smell so sharply that I should know from afar that he was coming.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What would you do, my tail, if someone was to betray me?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I would steer you so straight a course that you would soon be beyond his
+reach. Let us be off; I feel as if danger was near.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the fox was comfortable where he was, and did not hurry himself to take his
+tail’s advice. And before very long he found he was too late, for the bear had
+come round by another path, and guessing where his enemy was began to scratch
+at the roots of the tree. The fox made himself as small as he could, but a
+scrap of his tail peeped out, and the bear seized it and held it tight. Then
+the fox dug his claws into the ground, but he was not strong enough to pull
+against the bear, and slowly he was dragged forth and his body flung over the
+bear’s neck. In this manner they set out down the road, the fox’s tail being
+always in the bear’s mouth.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After they had gone some way, they passed a tree-stump, on which a bright
+coloured woodpecker was tapping.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah! those were better times when I used to paint all the birds such gay
+colours,” sighed the fox.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What are you saying, old fellow?” asked the bear.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I? Oh, I was saying nothing,” answered the fox drearily. “Just carry me to
+your cave and eat me up as quick as you can.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The bear was silent, and thought of his supper; and the two continued their
+journey till they reached another tree with a woodpecker tapping on it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah! those were better times when I used to paint all the birds such gay
+colours,” said the fox again to himself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Couldn’t you paint me too?” asked the bear suddenly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the fox shook his head; for he was always acting, even if no one was there
+to see him do it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You bear pain so badly,” he replied, in a thoughtful voice, “and you are
+impatient besides, and could never put up with all that is necessary. Why, you
+would first have to dig a pit, and then twist ropes of willow, and drive in
+posts and fill the hole with pitch, and, last of all, set it on fire. Oh, no;
+you would never be able to do all that.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It does not matter a straw how hard the work is,” answered the bear eagerly,
+“I will do it every bit.” And as he spoke he began tearing up the earth so fast
+that soon a deep pit was ready, deep enough to hold him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That is all right,” said the fox at last, “I see I was mistaken in you. Now
+sit here, and I will bind you.” So the bear sat down on the edge of the pit,
+and the fox sprang on his back, which he crossed with the willow ropes, and
+then set fire to the pitch. It burnt up in an instant, and caught the bands of
+willow and the bear’s rough hair; but he did not stir, for he thought that the
+fox was rubbing the bright colours into his skin, and that he would soon be as
+beautiful as a whole meadow of flowers. But when the fire grew hotter still he
+moved uneasily from one foot to the other, saying, imploringly: “It is getting
+rather warm, old man.” But all the answer he got was: “I thought you would
+never be able to suffer pain like those little birds.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The bear did not like being told that he was not as brave as a bird, so he set
+his teeth and resolved to endure anything sooner than speak again; but by this
+time the last willow band had burned through, and with a push the fox sent his
+victim tumbling into the grass, and ran off to hide himself in the forest.
+After a while he stole cautiously and found, as he expected, nothing left but a
+few charred bones. These he picked up and put in a bag, which he slung over his
+back.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By-and-by he met a Lapp driving his team of reindeer along the road, and as he
+drew near, the fox rattled the bones gaily.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That sounds like silver or gold,” thought the man to himself. And he said
+politely to the fox:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Good-day, friend! What have you got in your bag that makes such a strange
+sound?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“All the wealth my father left me,” answered the fox. “Do you feel inclined to
+bargain?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, I don’t mind,” replied the Lapp, who was a prudent man, and did not wish
+the fox to think him too eager; “but show me first what money you have got.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, but I can’t do that,” answered the fox, “my bag is sealed up. But if you
+will give me those three reindeer, you shall take it as it is, with all its
+contents.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The Lapp did not quite like it, but the fox spoke with such an air that his
+doubts melted away. He nodded, and stretched out his hand; the fox put the bag
+into it, and unharnassed the reindeer he had chosen.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I forgot!” he exclaimed, turning round, as he was about to drive them in
+the opposite direction, “you must be sure not to open the bag until you have
+gone at least five miles, right on the other side of those hills out there. If
+you do, you will find that all the gold and silver has changed into a parcel of
+charred bones.” Then he whipped up his reindeer, and was soon out of sight.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For some time the Lapp was satisfied with hearing the bones rattle, and
+thinking to himself what a good bargain he had made, and of all the things he
+would buy with the money. But, after a bit, this amusement ceased to content
+him, and besides, what was the use of planning when you did not know for
+certain how rich you were? Perhaps there might be a great deal of silver and
+only a little gold in the bag; or a great deal of gold, and only a little
+silver. Who could tell? He would not, of course, take the money out to count
+it, for that might bring him bad luck. But there could be no harm in just one
+peep! So he slowly broke the seal, and untied the strings, and, behold, a heap
+of burnt bones lay before him! In a minute he knew he had been tricked, and
+flinging the bag to the ground in a rage, he ran after the fox as fast as his
+snow-shoes would carry him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the fox had guessed exactly what would happen, and was on the look out.
+Directly he saw the little speck coming towards him, he wished that the man’s
+snow-shoes might break, and that very instant the Lapp’s shoes snapped in two.
+The Lapp did now know that this was the fox’s work, but he had to stop and
+fetch one of his other reindeer, which he mounted, and set off again in pursuit
+of his enemy. The fox soon heard him coming, and this time he wished that the
+reindeer might fall and break its leg. And so it did; and the man felt it was a
+hopeless chase, and that he was no match for the fox.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the fox drove on in peace till he reached the cave where all his stores were
+kept, and then he began to wonder whom he could get to help him kill his
+reindeer, for though he could steal reindeer he was too small to kill them.
+“After all, it will be quite easy,” thought he, and he bade a squirrel, who was
+watching him on a tree close by, take a message to all the robber beasts of the
+forest, and in less than half an hour a great crashing of branches was heard,
+and bears, wolves, snakes, mice, frogs, and other creatures came pressing up to
+the cave.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When they heard why they had been summoned, they declared themselves ready each
+one to do his part. The bear took his crossbow from his neck and shot the
+reindeer in the chin; and, from that day to this, every reindeer has a mark in
+that same spot, which is always known as the bear’s arrow. The wolf shot him in
+the thigh, and the sign of his arrow still remains; and so with the mouse and
+the viper and all the rest, even the frog; and at the last the reindeer all
+died. And the fox did nothing, but looked on.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I really must go down to the brook and wash myself,” said he (though he was
+perfectly clean), and he went under the bank and hid himself behind a stone.
+From there he set up the most frightful shrieks, so that the animals fled away
+in all directions. Only the mouse and the ermine remained where they were, for
+they thought that they were much too small to be noticed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The fox continued his shrieks till he felt sure that the animals must have got
+to a safe distance; then he crawled out of his hiding-place and went to the
+bodies of the reindeer, which he now had all to himself. He gathered a bundle
+of sticks for a fire, and was just preparing to cook a steak, when his enemy,
+the Lapp, came up, panting with haste and excitement.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What are you doing there?” cried he; “why did you palm off those bones on me?
+And why, when you had got the reindeer, did you kill them?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Dear brother,” answered the fox with a sob, “do not blame me for this
+misfortune. It is my comrades who have slain them in spite of my prayers.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The man made no reply, for the white fur of the ermine, who was crouching with
+the mouse behind some stones, had just caught his eye. He hastily seized the
+iron hook which hung over the fire and flung it at the little creature; but the
+ermine was too quick for him, and the hook only touched the top of its tail,
+and that has remained black to this day. As for the mouse, the Lapp threw a
+half-burnt stick after him, and though it was not enough to hurt him, his
+beautiful white skin was smeared all over with it, and all the washing in the
+world would not make him clean again. And the man would have been wiser if he
+had let the ermine and the mouse alone, for when he turned round again he found
+he was alone.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Directly the fox noticed that his enemy’s attention had wandered from himself
+he watched his chance, and stole softly away till he had reached a clump of
+thick bushes, when he ran as fast as he could, till he reached a river, where a
+man was mending his boat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I wish, I wish, I had a boat to mend too!” he cried, sitting up on his
+hind-legs and looking into the man’s face.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Stop your silly chatter!” answered the man crossly, “or I will give you a bath
+in the river.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I wish, I do wish, I had a boat to mend,” cried the fox again, as if he
+had not heard. And the man grew angry and seized him by the tail, and threw him
+far out in the stream close to the edge of an island; which was just what the
+fox wanted. He easily scrambled up, and sitting on the top, he called: “Hasten,
+hasten, O fishes, and carry me to the other side!” And the fishes left the
+stones where they had been sleeping, and the pools where they had been feeding,
+and hurried to see who could get to the island first.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I have won,” shouted the pike. “Jump on my back, dear fox, and you will find
+yourself in a trice on the opposite shore.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, thank you,” answered the fox, “your back is much too weak for me. I should
+break it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Try mine,” said the eel, who had wriggled to the front.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, thank you,” replied the fox again, “I should slip over your head and be
+drowned.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You won’t slip on MY back,” said the perch, coming forward.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No; but you are really TOO rough,” returned the fox.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, you can have no fault to find with ME,” put in the trout.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Good gracious! are YOU here?” exclaimed the fox. “But I’m afraid to trust
+myself to you either.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this moment a fine salmon swam slowly up.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, yes, you are the person I want,” said the fox; “but come near, so that I
+may get on your back, without wetting my feet.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the salmon swam close under the island, and when he was touching it the fox
+seized him in his claws and drew him out of the water, and put him on a spit,
+while he kindled a fire to cook him by. When everything was ready, and the
+water in the pot was getting hot, he popped him in, and waited till he thought
+the salmon was nearly boiled. But as he stooped down the water gave a sudden
+fizzle, and splashed into the fox’s eyes, blinding him. He started backwards
+with a cry of pain, and sat still for some minutes, rocking himself to and fro.
+When he was a little better he rose and walked down a road till he met a
+grouse, who stopped and asked what was the matter.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Have you a pair of eyes anywhere about you?” asked the fox politely.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, I am afraid I haven’t,” answered the grouse, and passed on.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+A little while after the fox heard the buzzing of an early bee, whom a gleam of
+sun had tempted out.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Do you happen to have an extra pair of eyes anywhere?” asked the fox.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am sorry to say I have only those I am using,” replied the bee. And the fox
+went on till he nearly fell over an asp who was gliding across the road.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I should be SO glad if you would tell me where I could get a pair of eyes,”
+said the fox. “I suppose you don’t happen to have any you could lend me?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, if you only want them for a short time, perhaps I could manage,”
+answered the asp; “but I can’t do without them for long.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, it is only for a very short time that I need them,” said the fox; “I have
+a pair of my own just behind that hill, and when I find them I will bring yours
+back to you. Perhaps you will keep these till them.” So he took the eyes out of
+his own head and popped them into the head of the asp, and put the asp’s eyes
+in their place. As he was running off he cried over his shoulder: “As long as
+the world lasts the asps’ eyes will go down in the heads of foxes from
+generation to generation.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And so it has been; and if you look at the eyes of an asp you will see that
+they are all burnt; and though thousands and thousands of years have gone by
+since the fox was going about playing tricks upon everybody he met, the asp
+still bears the traces of the day when the sly creature cooked the salmon.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Lapplandische Mahrchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap24"></a>
+Kisa the Cat</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time there lived a queen who had a beautiful cat, the colour of
+smoke, with china-blue eyes, which she was very fond of. The cat was constantly
+with her, and ran after her wherever she went, and even sat up proudly by her
+side when she drove out in her fine glass coach.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, pussy,” said the queen one day, “you are happier than I am! For you have a
+dear kitten just like yourself, and I have nobody to play with but you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Don’t cry,” answered the cat, laying her paw on her mistress’s arm. “Crying
+never does any good. I will see what can be done.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The cat was as good as her word. As soon as she returned from her drive she
+trotted off to the forest to consult a fairy who dwelt there, and very soon
+after the queen had a little girl, who seemed made out of snow and sunbeams.
+The queen was delighted, and soon the baby began to take notice of the kitten
+as she jumped about the room, and would not go to sleep at all unless the
+kitten lay curled up beside her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Two or three months went by, and though the baby was still a baby, the kitten
+was fast becoming a cat, and one evening when, as usual, the nurse came to look
+for her, to put her in the baby’s cot, she was nowhere to be found. What a hunt
+there was for that kitten, to be sure! The servants, each anxious to find her,
+as the queen was certain to reward the lucky man, searched in the most
+impossible places. Boxes were opened that would hardly have held the kitten’s
+paw; books were taken from bookshelves, lest the kitten should have got behind
+them, drawers were pulled out, for perhaps the kitten might have got shut in.
+But it was all no use. The kitten had plainly run away, and nobody could tell
+if it would ever choose to come back.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Years passed away, and one day, when the princess was playing ball in the
+garden, she happened to throw her ball farther than usual, and it fell into a
+clump of rose-bushes. The princess of course ran after it at once, and she was
+stooping down to feel if it was hidden in the long grass, when she heard a
+voice calling her: “Ingibjorg! Ingibjorg!” it said, “have you forgotten me? I
+am Kisa, your sister!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But I never HAD a sister,” answered Ingibjorg, very much puzzled; for she knew
+nothing of what had taken place so long ago.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Don’t you remember how I always slept in your cot beside you, and how you
+cried till I came? But girls have no memories at all! Why, I could find my way
+straight up to that cot this moment, if I was once inside the palace.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why did you go away then?” asked the princess. But before Kisa could answer,
+Ingibjorg’s attendants arrived breathless on the scene, and were so horrified
+at the sight of a strange cat, that Kisa plunged into the bushes and went back
+to the forest.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The princess was very much vexed with her ladies-in-waiting for frightening
+away her old playfellow, and told the queen who came to her room every evening
+to bid her good-night.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, it is quite true what Kisa said,” answered the queen; “I should have
+liked to see her again. Perhaps, some day, she will return, and then you must
+bring her to me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Next morning it was very hot, and the princess declared that she must go and
+play in the forest, where it was always cool, under the big shady trees. As
+usual, her attendants let her do anything she pleased, and sitting down on a
+mossy bank where a little stream tinkled by, soon fell sound asleep. The
+princess saw with delight that they would pay no heed to her, and wandered on
+and on, expecting every moment to see some fairies dancing round a ring, or
+some little brown elves peeping at her from behind a tree. But, alas! she met
+none of these; instead, a horrible giant came out of his cave and ordered her
+to follow him. The princess felt much afraid, as he was so big and ugly, and
+began to be sorry that she had not stayed within reach of help; but as there
+was no use in disobeying the giant, she walked meekly behind.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They went a long way, and Ingibjorg grew very tired, and at length began to
+cry.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I don’t like girls who make horrid noises,” said the giant, turning round.
+“But if you WANT to cry, I will give you something to cry for.” And drawing an
+axe from his belt, he cut off both her feet, which he picked up and put in his
+pocket. Then he went away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Poor Ingibjorg lay on the grass in terrible pain, and wondering if she should
+stay there till she died, as no one would know where to look for her. How long
+it was since she had set out in the morning she could not tell—it seemed years
+to her, of course; but the sun was still high in the heavens when she heard the
+sound of wheels, and then, with a great effort, for her throat was parched with
+fright and pain, she gave a shout.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am coming!” was the answer; and in another moment a cart made its way
+through the trees, driven by Kisa, who used her tail as a whip to urge the
+horse to go faster. Directly Kisa saw Ingibjorg lying there, she jumped quickly
+down, and lifting the girl carefully in her two front paws, laid her upon some
+soft hay, and drove back to her own little hut.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In the corner of the room was a pile of cushions, and these Kisa arranged as a
+bed. Ingibjorg, who by this time was nearly fainting from all she had gone
+through, drank greedily some milk, and then sank back on the cushions while
+Kisa fetched some dried herbs from a cupboard, soaked them in warm water and
+tied them on the bleeding legs. The pain vanished at once, and Ingibjorg looked
+up and smiled at Kisa.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You will go to sleep now,” said the cat, “and you will not mind if I leave you
+for a little while. I will lock the door, and no one can hurt you.” But before
+she had finished the princess was asleep. Then Kisa got into the cart, which
+was standing at the door, and catching up the reins, drove straight to the
+giant’s cave.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Leaving her cart behind some trees, Kisa crept gently up to the open door, and,
+crouching down, listened to what the giant was telling his wife, who was at
+supper with him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The first day that I can spare I shall just go back and kill her,” he said;
+“it would never do for people in the forest to know that a mere girl can defy
+me!” And he and his wife were so busy calling Ingibjorg all sorts of names for
+her bad behaviour, that they never noticed Kisa stealing into a dark corner,
+and upsetting a whole bag of salt into the great pot before the fire.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Dear me, how thirsty I am!” cried the giant by-and-by.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“So am I,” answered the wife. “I do wish I had not taken that last spoonful of
+broth; I am sure something was wrong with it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If I don’t get some water I shall die,” went on the giant. And rushing out of
+the cave, followed by his wife, he ran down the path which led to the river.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then Kisa entered the hut, and lost no time in searching every hole till she
+came upon some grass, under which Ingibjorg’s feet were hidden, and putting
+them in her cart, drove back again to her own hut.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Ingibjorg was thankful to see her, for she had lain, too frightened to sleep,
+trembling at every noise.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, is it you?” she cried joyfully, as Kisa turned the key. And the cat came
+in, holding up the two neat little feet in their silver slippers.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“In two minutes they shall be as tight as they ever were!” said Kisa. And
+taking some strings of the magic grass which the giant had carelessly heaped on
+them, she bound the feet on to the legs above.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Of course you won’t be able to walk for some time; you must not expect THAT,”
+she continued. “But if you are very good, perhaps, in about a week, I may carry
+you home again.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And so she did; and when the cat drove the cart up to the palace gate, lashing
+the horse furiously with her tail, and the king and queen saw their lost
+daughter sitting beside her, they declared that no reward could be too great
+for the person who had brought her out of the giant’s hands.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“We will talk about that by-and-by,” said the cat, as she made her best bow,
+and turned her horse’s head.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The princess was very unhappy when Kisa left her without even bidding her
+farewell. She would neither eat nor drink, nor take any notice of all the
+beautiful dresses her parents bought for her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“She will die, unless we can make her laugh,” one whispered to the other. “Is
+there anything in the world that we have left untried?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Nothing except marriage,” answered the king. And he invited all the handsomest
+young men he could think of to the palace, and bade the princess choose a
+husband from among them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It took her some time to decide which she admired the most, but at last she
+fixed upon a young prince, whose eyes were like the pools in the forest, and
+his hair of bright gold. The king and the queen were greatly pleased, as the
+young man was the son of a neighbouring king, and they gave orders that a
+splendid feast should be got ready.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the marriage was over, Kisa suddenly stood before them, and Ingibjorg
+rushed forward and clasped her in her arms.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I have come to claim my reward,” said the cat. “Let me sleep for this night at
+the foot of your bed.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Is that ALL?” asked Ingibjorg, much disappointed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is enough,” answered the cat. And when the morning dawned, it was no cat
+that lay upon the bed, but a beautiful princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“My mother and I were both enchanted by a spiteful fairy,” said she, “we could
+not free ourselves till we had done some kindly deed that had never been
+wrought before. My mother died without ever finding a chance of doing anything
+new, but I took advantage of the evil act of the giant to make you as whole as
+ever.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then they were all more delighted than before, and the princess lived in the
+court until she, too, married, and went away to govern one of her own.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Adapted from Neuislandischen Volksmärchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap25"></a>
+The Lion and the Cat</h2>
+
+<p>
+Far away on the other side of the world there lived, long ago, a lion and his
+younger brother, the wild cat, who were so fond of each other that they shared
+the same hut. The lion was much the bigger and stronger of the two—indeed, he
+was much bigger and stronger than any of the beasts that dwelt in the forest;
+and, besides, he could jump father and run faster than all the rest. If
+strength and swiftness could gain him a dinner he was sure never to be without
+one, but when it came to cunning, both the grizzly bear and the serpent could
+get the better of him, and he was forced to call in the help of the wild cat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the young wild cat had a lovely golden ball, so beautiful that you could
+hardly look at it except through a piece of smoked glass, and he kept it hidden
+in the thick fur muff that went round his neck. A very large old animal, since
+dead, had given it to him when he was hardly more than a baby, and had told him
+never to part with it, for as long as he kept it no harm could ever come near
+him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In general the wild cat did not need to use his ball, for the lion was fond of
+hunting, and could kill all the food that they needed; but now and then his
+life would have been in danger had it not been for the golden ball.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day the two brothers started to hunt at daybreak, but as the cat could not
+run nearly as fast as the lion, he had quite a long start. At least he THOUGHT
+it was a long one, but in a very few bounds and springs the lion reached his
+side.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“There is a bear sitting on that tree,” he whispered softly. “He is only
+waiting for us to pass, to drop down on my back.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah, you are so big that he does not see I am behind you,” answered the wild
+cat. And, touching the ball, he just said: “Bear, die!” And the bear tumbled
+dead out of the tree, and rolled over just in front of them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For some time they trotted on without any adventures, till just as they were
+about to cross a strip of long grass on the edge of the forest, the lion’s
+quick ears detected a faint rustling noise.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That is a snake,” he cried, stopping short, for he was much more afraid of
+snakes than of bears.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, it is all right,” answered the cat. “Snake, die!” And the snake died, and
+the two brothers skinned it. They then folded the skin up into a very small
+parcel, and the cat tucked it into his mane, for snakes’ skins can do all sorts
+of wonderful things, if you are lucky enough to have one of them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All this time they had had no dinner, for the snake’s flesh was not nice, and
+the lion did not like eating bear—perhaps because he never felt sure that the
+bear was REALLY dead, and would not jump up alive when his enemy went near him.
+Most people are afraid of SOME thing, and bears and serpents were the only
+creatures that caused the lion’s heart to tremble. So the two brothers set off
+again and soon reached the side of a hill where some fine deer were grazing.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Kill one of those deer for your own dinner,” said the boy-brother, “but catch
+me another alive. I want him.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The lion at once sprang towards them with a loud roar, but the deer bounded
+away, and they were all three soon lost to sight. The cat waited for a long
+while, but finding that the lion did not return, went back to the house where
+they lived.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was quite dark when the lion came home, where his brother was sitting curled
+up in one corner.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Did you catch the deer for me?” asked the boy-brother, springing up.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, no,” replied the man-brother. “The fact is, that I did not get up to
+them till we had run half way across the world and left the wind far behind us.
+Think what a trouble it would have been to drag it here! So—I just ate them
+both.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The cat said nothing, but he did not feel that he loved his big brother. He had
+thought a great deal about that deer, and had meant to get on his back to ride
+him as a horse, and go to see all the wonderful places the lion talked to him
+about when he was in a good temper. The more he thought of it the more sulky he
+grew, and in the morning, when the lion said that it was time for them to start
+to hunt, the cat told him that he might kill the bear and snake by himself, as
+HE had a headache, and would rather stay at home. The little fellow knew quite
+well that the lion would not dare to go out without him and his ball for fear
+of meeting a bear or a snake.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The quarrel went on, and for many days neither of the brothers spoke to each
+other, and what made them still more cross was, that they could get very little
+to eat, and we know that people are often cross when they are hungry. At last
+it occurred to the lion that if he could only steal the magic ball he could
+kill bears and snakes for himself, and then the cat might be as sulky as he
+liked for anything that it would matter. But how was the stealing to be done?
+The cat had the ball hung round his neck day and night, and he was such a light
+sleeper that it was useless to think of taking it while he slept. No! the only
+thing was to get him to lend it of his own accord, and after some days the lion
+(who was not at all clever) hit upon a plan that he thought would do.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Dear me, how dull it is here!” said the lion one afternoon, when the rain was
+pouring down in such torrents that, however sharp your eyes or your nose might
+be, you could not spy a single bird or beast among the bushes. “Dear me, how
+dull, how dreadfully dull I am. Couldn’t we have a game of catch with that
+golden ball of yours?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I don’t care about playing catch, it does not amuse me,” answered the cat, who
+was as cross as ever; for no cat, even to this day, ever forgets an injury done
+to him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, then, lend me the ball for a little, and I will play by myself,” replied
+the lion, stretching out a paw as he spoke.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You can’t play in the rain, and if you did, you would only lose it in the
+bushes,” said the cat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, no, I won’t; I will play in here. Don’t be so ill-natured.” And with a
+very bad grace the cat untied the string and threw the golden ball into the
+lion’s lap, and composed himself to sleep again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For a long while the lion tossed it up and down gaily, feeling that, however
+sound asleep the boy-brother might LOOK, he was sure to have one eye open; but
+gradually he began to edge closer to the opening, and at last gave such a toss
+that the ball went up high into the air, and he could not see what became of
+it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, how stupid of me!” he cried, as the cat sprang up angrily, “let us go at
+once and search for it. It can’t really have fallen very far.” But though they
+searched that day and the next, and the next after that, they never found it,
+because it never came down.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After the loss of his ball the cat refused to live with the lion any longer,
+but wandered away to the north, always hoping he might meet with his ball
+again. But months passed, and years passed, and though he travelled over
+hundreds of miles, he never saw any traces of it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At length, when he was getting quite old, he came to a place unlike any that he
+had ever seen before, where a big river rolled right to the foot of some high
+mountains. The ground all about the river bank was damp and marshy, and as no
+cat likes to wet its feet, this one climbed a tree that rose high above the
+water, and thought sadly of his lost ball, which would have helped him out of
+this horrible place. Suddenly he saw a beautiful ball, for all the world like
+his own, dangling from a branch of the tree he was on. He longed to get at it;
+but was the branch strong enough to bear his weight? It was no use, after all
+he had done, getting drowned in the water. However, it could do no harm, if he
+was to go a little way; he could always manage to get back somehow.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So he stretched himself at full length upon the branch, and wriggled his body
+cautiously along. To his delight it seemed thick and stout. Another movement,
+and, by stretching out his paw, he would be able to draw the string towards
+him, when the branch gave a loud crack, and the cat made haste to wriggle
+himself back the way he had come.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But when cats make up their minds to do anything they generally DO it; and this
+cat began to look about to see if there was really no way of getting at his
+ball. Yes! there was, and it was much surer than the other, though rather more
+difficult. Above the bough where the ball was hung was another bough much
+thicker, which he knew could not break with his weight; and by holding on tight
+to this with all his four paws, he could just manage to touch the ball with his
+tail. He would thus be able to whisk the ball to and fro till, by-and-by, the
+string would become quite loose, and it would fall to the ground. It might take
+some time, but the lion’s little brother was patient, like most cats.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Well, it all happened just as the cat intended it should, and when the ball
+dropped on the ground the cat ran down the tree like lightning, and, picking it
+up, tucked it away in the snake’s skin round his neck. Then he began jumping
+along the shore of the Big Water from one place to another, trying to find a
+boat, or even a log of wood, that would take him across. But there was nothing;
+only, on the other side, he saw two girls cooking, and though he shouted to
+them at the top of his voice, they were too far off to hear what he said. And,
+what was worse, the ball suddenly fell out of its snake’s skin bag right into
+the river.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now, it is not at all an uncommon thing for balls to tumble into rivers, but in
+that case they generally either fall to the bottom and stay there, or else bob
+about on the top of the water close to where they first touched it. But this
+ball, instead of doing either of these things, went straight across to the
+other side, and there one of the girls saw it when she stooped to dip some
+water into her pail.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh! what a lovely ball!” cried she, and tried to catch it in her pail; but the
+ball always kept bobbing just out of her reach.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Come and help me!” she called to her sister, and after a long while they had
+the ball safe inside the pail. They were delighted with their new toy, and one
+or the other held it in her hand till bedtime came, and then it was a long time
+before they could make up their minds where it would be safest for the night.
+At last they locked it in a cupboard in one corner of their room, and as there
+was no hole anywhere the ball could not possibly get out. After that they went
+to sleep.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In the morning the first thing they both did was to run to the cupboard and
+unlock it, but when the door opened they started back, for, instead of the
+ball, there stood a handsome young man.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ladies,” he said, “how can I thank you for what you have done for me? Long,
+long ago, I was enchanted by a wicked fairy, and condemned to keep the shape of
+a ball till I should meet with two maidens, who would take me to their own
+home. But where was I to meet them? For hundreds of years I have lived in the
+depths of the forest, where nothing but wild beasts ever came, and it was only
+when the lion threw me into the sky that I was able to fall to earth near this
+river. Where there is a river, sooner or later people will come; so, hanging
+myself on a tree, I watched and waited. For a moment I lost heart when I fell
+once more into the hands of my old master the wild cat, but my hopes rose again
+as I saw he was making for the river bank opposite where you were standing.
+That was my chance, and I took it. And now, ladies, I have only to say that, if
+ever I can do anything to help you, go to the top of that high mountain and
+knock three times at the iron door at the north side, and I will come to you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So, with a low bow, he vanished from before them, leaving the maidens weeping
+at having lost in one moment both the ball and the prince.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Adapted from North American Indian Legends.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap26"></a>
+Which was the Foolishest?</h2>
+
+<p>
+In a little village that stood on a wide plain, where you could see the sun
+from the moment he rose to the moment he set, there lived two couples side by
+side. The men, who worked under the same master, were quite good friends, but
+the wives were always quarrelling, and the subject they quarrelled most about
+was—which of the two had the stupidest husband.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Unlike most women—who think that anything that belongs to them must be better
+than what belongs to anyone else—each thought her husband the more foolish of
+the two.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You should just see what he does!” one said to her neighbour. “He puts on the
+baby’s frock upside down, and, one day, I found him trying to feed her with
+boiling soup, and her mouth was scalded for days after. Then he picks up stones
+in the road and sows them instead of potatoes, and one day he wanted to go into
+the garden from the top window, because he declared it was a shorter way than
+through the door.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That is bad enough, of course,” answered the other; “but it is really NOTHING
+to what I have to endure every day from MY husband. If, when I am busy, I ask
+him to go and feed the poultry, he is certain to give them some poisonous stuff
+instead of their proper food, and when I visit the yard next I find them all
+dead. Once he even took my best bonnet, when I had gone away to my sick mother,
+and when I came back I found he had given it to the hen to lay her eggs in. And
+you know yourself that, only last week, when I sent him to buy a cask of
+butter, he returned driving a hundred and fifty ducks which someone had induced
+him to take, and not one of them would lay.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, I am afraid he IS trying,” replied the first; “but let us put them to the
+proof, and see which of them is the most foolish.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So, about the time that she expected her husband home from work, she got out
+her spinning-wheel, and sat busily turning it, taking care not even to look up
+from her work when the man came in. For some minutes he stood with his mouth
+open watching her, and as she still remained silent, he said at last:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Have you gone mad, wife, that you sit spinning without anything on the wheel?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“YOU may think that there is nothing on it,” answered she, “but I can assure
+you that there is a large skein of wool, so fine that nobody can see it, which
+will be woven into a coat for you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Dear me!” he replied, “what a clever wife I have got! If you had not told me I
+should never have known that there was any wool on the wheel at all. But now I
+really do seem to see something.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The woman smiled and was silent, and after spinning busily for an hour more,
+she got up from her stoop, and began to weave as fast as she could. At last she
+got up, and said to her husband: “I am too tired to finish it to-night, so I
+shall go to bed, and to-morrow I shall only have the cutting and stitching to
+do.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the next morning she got up early, and after she had cleaned her house, and
+fed her chickens, and put everything in its place again, she bent over the
+kitchen table, and the sound of her big scissors might be heard snip! snap! as
+far as the garden. Her husband could not see anything to snip at; but then he
+was so stupid that was not surprising!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After the cutting came the sewing. The woman patted and pinned and fixed and
+joined, and then, turning to the man, she said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now it is ready for you to try on.” And she made him take off his coat, and
+stand up in front of her, and once more she patted an pinned and fixed and
+joined, and was very careful in smoothing out every wrinkle.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It does not feel very warm,” observed the man at last, when he had borne all
+this patiently for a long time.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That is because it is so fine,” answered she; “you do not want it to be as
+thick as the rough clothes you wear every day.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He DID, but was ashamed to say so, and only answered: “Well, I am sure it must
+be beautiful since you say so, and I shall be smarter than anyone in the whole
+village. ‘What a splendid coat!’ they will exclaim when they see me. But it is
+not everybody who has a wife as clever as mine.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Meanwhile the other wife was not idle. As soon as her husband entered she
+looked at him with such a look of terror that the poor man was quite
+frightened.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why do you stare at me so? Is there anything the matter?” asked he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh! go to bed at once,” she cried; “you must be very ill indeed to look like
+that!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The man was rather surprised at first, as he felt particularly well that
+evening; but the moment his wife spoke he became quite certain that he had
+something dreadful the matter with him, and grew quite pale.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I dare say it would be the best place for me,” he answered, trembling; and he
+suffered his wife to take him upstairs, and to help him off with his clothes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If you sleep well during the might there MAY be a chance for you,” said she,
+shaking her head, as she tucked him up warmly; “but if not—” And of course the
+poor man never closed an eye till the sun rose.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“How do you feel this morning?” asked the woman, coming in on tip-toe when her
+house-work was finished.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, bad; very bad indeed,” answered he; “I have not slept for a moment. Can
+you think of nothing to make me better?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will try everything that is possible,” said the wife, who did not in the
+least wish her husband to die, but was determined to show that he was more
+foolish that the other man. “I will get some dried herbs and make you a drink,
+but I am very much afraid that it is too late. Why did you not tell me before?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I thought perhaps the pain would go off in a day or two; and, besides, I did
+not want to make you unhappy,” answered the man, who was by this time quite
+sure he had been suffering tortures, and had borne them like a hero. “Of
+course, if I had had any idea how ill I really was, I should have spoken at
+once.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, well, I will see what can be done,” said the wife, “but talking is not
+good for you. Lie still, and keep yourself warm.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All that day the man lay in bed, and whenever his wife entered the room and
+asked him, with a shake of the head, how he felt, he always replied that he was
+getting worse. At last, in the evening, she burst into tears, and when he
+inquired what was the matter, she sobbed out:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, my poor, poor husband, are you really dead? I must go to-morrow and order
+your coffin.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now, when the man heard this, a cold shiver ran through his body, and all at
+once he knew that he was as well as he had ever been in his life.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, no, no!” he cried, “I feel quite recovered! Indeed, I think I shall go out
+to work.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You will do no such thing,” replied his wife. “Just keep quite quiet, for
+before the sun rises you will be a dead man.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The man was very frightened at her words, and lay absolutely still while the
+undertaker came and measured him for his coffin; and his wife gave orders to
+the gravedigger about his grave. That evening the coffin was sent home, and in
+the morning at nine o’clock the woman put him on a long flannel garment, and
+called to the undertaker’s men to fasten down the lid and carry him to the
+grave, where all their friends were waiting them. Just as the body was being
+placed in the ground the other woman’s husband came running up, dressed, as far
+as anyone could see, in no clothes at all. Everybody burst into shouts of
+laughter at the sight of him, and the men laid down the coffin and laughed too,
+till their sides nearly split. The dead man was so astonished at this
+behaviour, that he peeped out of a little window in the side of the coffin, and
+cried out:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I should laugh as loudly as any of you, if I were not a dead man.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When they heard the voice coming from the coffin the other people suddenly
+stopped laughing, and stood as if they had been turned into stone. Then they
+rushed with one accord to the coffin, and lifted the lid so that the man could
+step out amongst them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Were you really not dead after all?” asked they. “And if not, why did you let
+yourself be buried?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this the wives both confessed that they had each wished to prove that her
+husband was stupider than the other. But the villagers declared that they could
+not decide which was the most foolish—the man who allowed himself to be
+persuaded that he was wearing fine clothes when he was dressed in nothing, or
+the man who let himself be buried when he was alive and well.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the women quarrelled just as much as they did before, and no one ever knew
+whose husband was the most foolish.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Adapted from the Neuislandische Volksmärchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap27"></a>
+Asmund and Signy</h2>
+
+<p>
+Long, long ago, in the days when fairies, witches, giants and ogres still
+visited the earth, there lived a king who reigned over a great and beautiful
+country. He was married to a wife whom he dearly loved, and had two most
+promising children—a son called Asmund, and a daughter who was named Signy.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The king and queen were very anxious to bring their children up well, and the
+young prince and princess were taught everything likely to make them clever and
+accomplished. They lived at home in their father’s palace, and he spared no
+pains to make their lives happy.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Prince Asmund dearly loved all outdoor sports and an open-air life, and from
+his earliest childhood he had longed to live entirely in the forest close by.
+After many arguments and entreaties he succeeded in persuading the king to give
+him two great oak trees for his very own.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Now,” said he to his sister, “I will have the trees hollowed out, and then I
+will make rooms in them and furnish them so that I shall be able to live out in
+the forest.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, Asmund!” exclaimed Signy, “what a delightful idea! Do let me come too, and
+live in one of your trees. I will bring all my pretty things and ornaments, and
+the trees are so near home we shall be quite safe in them.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Asmund, who was extremely fond of his sister, readily consented, and they had a
+very happy time together, carrying over all their pet treasures, and Signy’s
+jewels and other ornaments, and arranging them in the pretty little rooms
+inside the trees.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Unfortunately sadder days were to come. A war with another country broke out,
+and the king had to lead his army against their enemy. During his absence the
+queen fell ill, and after lingering for some time she died, to the great grief
+of her children. They made up their minds to live altogether for a time in
+their trees, and for this purpose they had provisions enough stored up inside
+to last them a year.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now, I must tell you, in another country a long way off, there reigned a king
+who had an only son named Ring. Prince Ring had heard so much about the beauty
+and goodness of Princess Signy that he determined to marry her if possible. So
+he begged his father to let him have a ship for the voyage, set sail with a
+favourable wind, and after a time landed in the country where Signy lived.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince lost no time in setting out for the royal palace, and on his way
+there he met such a wonderfully lovely woman that he felt he had never seen
+such beauty in all his life. He stopped her and at once asked who she was.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am Signy, the king’s daughter,” was the reply.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then the prince inquired why she was wandering about all by herself, and she
+told him that since her mother’s death she was so sad that whilst her father
+was away she preferred being alone.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Ring was quite deceived by her, and never guessed that she was not Princess
+Signy at all, but a strong, gigantic, wicked witch bent on deceiving him under
+a beautiful shape. He confided to her that he had travelled all the way from
+his own country for her sake, having fallen in love with the accounts he had
+heard of her beauty, and he then and there asked her to be his wife.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The witch listened to all he said and, much pleased, ended by accepting his
+offer; but she begged him to return to his ship for a little while as she
+wished to go some way further into the forest, promising to join him later on.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Prince Ring did as she wished and went back to his ship to wait, whilst she
+walked on into the forest till she reached the two oak trees.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Here she resumed her own gigantic shape, tore up the trees by their roots,
+threw one of them over her back and clasped the other to her breast, carried
+them down to the shore and waded out with them to the ship.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+She took care not to be noticed as she reached the ship, and directly she got
+on board she once more changed to her former lovely appearance and told the
+prince that her luggage was now all on board, and that they need wait for
+nothing more.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince gave orders to set sail at once, and after a fine voyage landed in
+his own country, where his parents and his only sister received him with the
+greatest joy and affection.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The false Signy was also very kindly welcomed. A beautiful house was got ready
+for her, and Prince Ring had the two oaks planted in the garden just in front
+of her windows so that she might have the pleasure of seeing them constantly.
+He often went to visit the witch, whom he believed to be Princess Signy, and
+one day he asked: “Don’t you think we might be married before long?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes,” said she, quite pleased, “I am quite ready to marry you whenever you
+like.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Then,” replied Ring, “let us decide on this day fortnight. And see, I have
+brought you some stuff to make your wedding-dress of.” So saying he gave her a
+large piece of the most beautiful brocade, all woven over with gold threads,
+and embroidered with pearls and other jewels.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince had hardly left her before the witch resumed her proper shape and
+tore about the room, raging and storming and flinging the beautiful silk on the
+floor.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What was SHE to do with such things?” she roared. “SHE did not know how to sew
+or make clothes, and she was sure to die of starvation into the bargain if her
+brother Ironhead did not come soon and bring her some raw meat and bones, for
+she really could eat nothing else.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As she was raving and roaring in this frantic manner part of the floor suddenly
+opened and a huge giant rose up carrying a great chest in his arms. The witch
+was enchanted at this sight, and eagerly helped her brother to set down and
+open the chest, which was full of the ghastly food she had been longing for.
+The horrid pair set to and greedily devoured it all, and when the chest was
+quite empty the giant put it on his shoulder and disappeared as he had come,
+without leaving any trace of his visit.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But his sister did not keep quiet for long, and tore and pulled at the rich
+brocade as if she wanted to destroy it, stamping about and shouting angrily.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now, all this time Prince Asmund and his sister sat in their trees just outside
+the window and saw all that was going on.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Dear Signy,” said Asmund, “do try to get hold of that piece of brocade and
+make the clothes yourself, for really we shall have no rest day or night with
+such a noise.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will try,” said Signy; “it won’t be an easy matter, but it’s worth while
+taking some trouble to have a little peace.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So she watched for an opportunity and managed to carry off the brocade the
+first time the witch left her room. Then she set to work, cutting out and
+sewing as best she could, and by the end of six days she had turned it into an
+elegant robe with a long train and a mantle. When it was finished she climbed
+to the top of her tree and contrived to throw the clothes on to a table through
+the open window.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+How delighted the witch was when she found the clothes all finished! The next
+time Prince Ring came to see her she gave them to him, and he paid her many
+compliments on her skilful work, after which he took leave of her in the most
+friendly manner. But he had scarcely left the house when the witch began to
+rage as furiously as ever, and never stopped till her brother Ironhead
+appeared.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When Asmund saw all these wild doings from his tree he felt he could no longer
+keep silence. He went to Prince Ring and said: “Do come with me and see the
+strange things that are happening in the new princess’s room.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The prince was not a little surprised, but he consented to hide himself with
+Asmund behind the panelling of the room, from where they could see all that
+went on through a little slit. The witch was raving and roaring as usual, and
+said to her brother:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Once I am married to the king’s son I shall be better off than now. I shall
+take care to have all that pack of courtiers put to death, and then I shall
+send for all my relations to come and live here instead. I fancy the giants
+will enjoy themselves very much with me and my husband.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When Prince Ring heard this he fell into such a rage that he ordered the house
+to be set on fire, and it was burnt to the ground, with the witch and her
+brother in it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Asmund then told the prince about the two oak trees and took him to see them.
+The prince was quite astonished at them and at all their contents, but still
+more so at the extreme beauty of Signy. He fell in love with her at once, and
+entreated her to marry him, which, after a time, she consented to do. Asmund,
+on his side, asked for the hand of Prince Ring’s sister, which was gladly
+granted him, and the double wedding was celebrated with great rejoicings.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After this Prince Asmund and his bride returned to his country to live with the
+king his father. The two couples often met, and lived happily for many, many
+years. And that is the end of the story.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[From Islandische Mahrchen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap28"></a>
+Rübezahl</h2>
+
+<p>
+Over all the vast under-world the mountain Gnome Rübezahl was lord; and busy
+enough the care of his dominions kept him. There were the endless treasure
+chambers to be gone through, and the hosts of gnomes to be kept to their tasks.
+Some built strong barriers to hold back the fiery rivers in the earth’s heart,
+and some had scalding vapours to change dull stones to precious metal, or were
+hard at work filling every cranny of the rocks with diamonds and rubies; for
+Rübezahl loved all pretty things. Sometimes the fancy would take him to leave
+those gloomy regions, and come out upon the green earth for a while, and bask
+in the sunshine and hear the birds sing. And as gnomes live many hundreds of
+years he saw strange things. For, the first time he came up, the great hills
+were covered with thick forests, in which wild animals roamed, and Rübezahl
+watched the fierce fights between bear and bison, or chased the grey wolves, or
+amused himself by rolling great rocks down into the desolate valleys, to hear
+the thunder of their fall echoing among the hills. But the next time he
+ventured above ground, what was his surprise to find everything changed! The
+dark woods were hewn down, and in their place appeared blossoming orchards
+surrounding cosy-looking thatched cottages; from every chimney the blue smoke
+curled peacefully into the air, sheep and oxen fed in the flowery meadows,
+while from the shade of the hedges came the music of the shepherd’s pipe. The
+strangeness and pleasantness of the sight so delighted the gnome that he never
+thought of resenting the intrusion of these unexpected guests, who, without
+saying “by your leave” or “with your leave,” had made themselves so very much
+at home upon his hills; nor did he wish to interfere with their doings, but
+left them in quiet possession of their homes, as a good householder leaves in
+peace the swallows who have built their nests under his eaves. He was indeed
+greatly minded to make friends with this being called “man,” so, taking the
+form of an old field labourer, he entered the service of a farmer. Under his
+care all the crops flourished exceedingly, but the master proved to be wasteful
+and ungrateful, and Rübezahl soon left him, and went to be shepherd to his next
+neighbour. He tended the flock so diligently, and knew so well where to lead
+the sheep to the sweetest pastures, and where among the hills to look for any
+who strayed away, that they too prospered under his care, and not one was lost
+or torn by wolves; but this new master was a hard man, and begrudged him his
+well-earned wages. So he ran away and went to serve the judge. Here he upheld
+the law with might and main, and was a terror to thieves and evildoers; but the
+judge was a bad man, who took bribes, and despised the law. Rübezahl would not
+be the tool of an unjust man, and so he told his master, who thereupon ordered
+him to be thrown into prison. Of course that did not trouble the gnome at all,
+he simply got out through the keyhole, and went away down to his underground
+palace, very much disappointed by his first experience of mankind. But, as time
+went on, he forgot the disagreeable things that had happened to him, and
+thought he would take another look at the upper world.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So he stole into the valley, keeping himself carefully hidden in copse or
+hedgerow, and very soon met with an adventure; for, peeping through a screen of
+leaves, he saw before him a green lawn where stood a charming maiden, fresh as
+the spring, and beautiful to look upon. Around her upon the grass lay her young
+companions, as if they had thrown themselves down to rest after some merry
+game. Beyond them flowed a little brook, into which a waterfall leapt from a
+high rock, filling the air with its pleasant sound, and making a coolness even
+in the sultry noontide. The sight of the maiden so pleased the gnome that, for
+the first time, he wished himself a mortal; and, longing for a better view of
+the gay company, he changed himself into a raven and perched upon an oaktree
+which overhung the brook. But he soon found that this was not at all a good
+plan. He could only see with a raven’s eyes, and feel as a raven feels; and a
+nest of field-mice at the foot of the tree interested him far more than the
+sport of the maidens. When he understood this he flew down again in a great
+hurry into the thicket, and took the form of a handsome young man—that was the
+best way—and he fell in love with the girl then and there. The fair maiden was
+the daughter of the king of the country, and she often wandered in the forest
+with her play fellows gathering the wild flowers and fruits, till the midday
+heat drove the merry band to the shady lawn by the brook to rest, or to bathe
+in the cool waters. On this particular morning the fancy took them to wander
+off again into the wood. This was Master Rübezahl’s opportunity. Stepping out
+of his hiding-place he stood in the midst of the little lawn, weaving his magic
+spells, till slowly all about him changed, and when the maidens returned at
+noon to their favourite resting-place they stood lost in amazement, and almost
+fancied that they must be dreaming. The red rocks had become white marble and
+alabaster; the stream that murmured and struggled before in its rocky bed,
+flowed in silence now in its smooth channel, from which a clear fountain leapt,
+to fall again in showers of diamond drops, now on this side now on that, as the
+wandering breeze scattered it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Daisies and forget-me-nots fringed its brink, while tall hedges of roses and
+jasmine ringed it round, making the sweetest and daintiest bower imaginable. To
+the right and left of the waterfall opened out a wonderful grotto, its walls
+and arches glittering with many-coloured rock-crystals, while in every niche
+were spread out strange fruits and sweetmeats, the very sight of which made the
+princess long to taste them. She hesitated a while, however, scarcely able to
+believe her eyes, and not knowing if she should enter the enchanted spot or fly
+from it. But at length curiosity prevailed, and she and her companions explored
+to their heart’s content, and tasted and examined everything, running hither
+and thither in high glee, and calling merrily to each other.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last, when they were quite weary, the princess cried out suddenly that
+nothing would content her but to bathe in the marble pool, which certainly did
+look very inviting; and they all went gaily to this new amusement. The princess
+was ready first, but scarcely had she slipped over the rim of the pool when
+down—down—down she sank, and vanished in its depths before her frightened
+playmates could seize her by so much as a lock of her floating golden hair!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Loudly did they weep and wail, running about the brink of the pool, which
+looked so shallow and so clear, but which had swallowed up their princess
+before their eyes. They even sprang into the water and tried to dive after her,
+but in vain; they only floated like corks in the enchanted pool, and could not
+keep under water for a second.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They saw at last that there was nothing for it but to carry to the king the sad
+tidings of his beloved daughter’s disappearance. And what great weeping and
+lamentation there was in the palace when the dreadful news was told! The king
+tore his robes, dashed his golden crown from his head, and hid his face in his
+purple mantle for grief and anguish at the loss of the princess. After the
+first outburst of wailing, however, he took heart and hurried off to see for
+himself the scene of this strange adventure, thinking, as people will in
+sorrow, that there might be some mistake after all. But when he reached the
+spot, behold, all was changed again! The glittering grotto described to him by
+the maidens had completely vanished, and so had the marble bath, the bower of
+jasmine; instead, all was a tangle of flowers, as it had been of old. The king
+was so much perplexed that he threatened the princess’s playfellows with all
+sorts of punishments if they would not confess something about her
+disappearance; but as they only repeated the same story he presently put down
+the whole affair to the work of some sprite or goblin, and tried to console
+himself for his loss by ordering a grand hunt; for kings cannot bear to be
+troubled about anything long.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Meanwhile the princess was not at all unhappy in the palace of her elfish
+lover.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the water-nymphs, who were hiding in readiness, had caught her and dragged
+her out of the sight of her terrified maidens, she herself had not had time to
+be frightened. They swam with her quickly by strange underground ways to a
+palace so splendid that her father’s seemed but a poor cottage in comparison
+with it, and when she recovered from her astonishment she found herself seated
+upon a couch, wrapped in a wonderful robe of satin fastened with a silken
+girdle, while beside her knelt a young man who whispered the sweetest speeches
+imaginable in her ear. The gnome, for he it was, told her all about himself and
+his great underground kingdom, and presently led her through the many rooms and
+halls of the palace, and showed her the rare and wonderful things displayed in
+them till she was fairly dazzled at the sight of so much splendour. On three
+sides of the castle lay a lovely garden with masses of gay, sweet flowers, and
+velvet lawns all cool and shady, which pleased the eye of the princess. The
+fruit trees were hung with golden and rosy apples, and nightingales sang in
+every bush, as the gnome and the princess wandered in the leafy alleys,
+sometimes gazing at the moon, sometimes pausing to gather the rarest flowers
+for her adornment. And all the time he was thinking to himself that never,
+during the hundreds of years he had lived, had he seen so charming a maiden.
+But the princess felt no such happiness; in spite of all the magic delights
+around her she was sad, though she tried to seem content for fear of
+displeasing the gnome. However, he soon perceived her melancholy, and in a
+thousand ways strove to dispel the cloud, but in vain. At last he said to
+himself: “Men are sociable creatures, like bees or ants. Doubtless this lovely
+mortal is pining for company. Who is there I can find for her to talk to?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Thereupon he hastened into the nearest field and dug up a dozen or so of
+different roots—carrots, turnips, and radishes—and laying them carefully in an
+elegant basket brought them to the princess, who sat pensive in the shade of
+the rose-bower.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Loveliest daughter of earth,” said the gnome, “banish all sorrow; no more
+shall you be lonely in my dwelling. In this basket is all you need to make this
+spot delightful to you. Take this little many-coloured wand, and with a touch
+give to each root the form you desire to see.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+With this he left her, and the princess, without an instant’s delay, opened the
+basket, and touching a turnip, cried eagerly: “Brunhilda, my dear Brunhilda!
+come to me quickly!” And sure enough there was Brunhilda, joyfully hugging and
+kissing her beloved princess, and chattering as gaily as in the old days.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This sudden appearance was so delightful that the princess could hardly believe
+her own eyes, and was quite beside herself with the joy of having her dear
+playfellow with her once more. Hand in hand they wandered about the enchanted
+garden, and gathered the golden apples from the trees, and when they were tired
+of this amusement the princess led her friend through all the wonderful rooms
+of the palace, until at last they came to the one in which were kept all the
+marvellous dresses and ornaments the gnome had given to his hoped-for bride.
+There they found so much to amuse them that the hours passed like minutes.
+Veils, girdles, and necklaces were tried on and admired, the imitation
+Brunhilda knew so well how to behave herself, and showed so much taste that
+nobody would ever have suspected that she was nothing but a turnip after all.
+The gnome, who had secretly been keeping an eye upon them, was very pleased
+with himself for having so well understood the heart of a woman; and the
+princess seemed to him even more charming than before. She did not forget to
+touch the rest of the roots with her magic wand, and soon had all her maidens
+about her, and even, as she had two tiny radishes to spare, her favourite cat,
+and her little dog whose name was Beni.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And now all went cheerfully in the castle. The princess gave to each of the
+maidens her task, and never was mistress better served. For a whole week she
+enjoyed the delight of her pleasant company undisturbed. They all sang, they
+danced, they played from morning to night; only the princess noticed that day
+by day the fresh young faces of her maidens grew pale and wan, and the mirror
+in the great marble hall showed her that she alone still kept her rosy bloom,
+while Brunhilda and the rest faded visibly. They assured her that all was well
+with them; but, nevertheless, they continued to waste away, and day by day it
+became harder to them to take part in the games of the princess, till at last,
+one fine morning, when the princess started from bed and hastened out to join
+her gay playfellows, she shuddered and started back at the sight of a group of
+shrivelled crones, with bent backs and trembling limbs, who supported their
+tottering steps with staves and crutches, and coughed dismally. A little nearer
+to the hearth lay the once frolicsome Beni, with all four feet stretched
+stiffly out, while the sleek cat seemed too weak to raise his head from his
+velvet cushion.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The horrified princess fled to the door to escape from the sight of this
+mournful company, and called loudly for the gnome, who appeared at once, humbly
+anxious to do her bidding.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Malicious Sprite,” she cried, “why do you begrudge me my playmates—the
+greatest delight of my lonely hours? Isn’t this solitary life in such a desert
+bad enough without your turning the castle into a hospital for the aged? Give
+my maidens back their youth and health this very minute, or I will never love
+you!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Sweetest and fairest of damsels,” cried the gnome, “do not be angry;
+everything that is in my power I will do—but do not ask the impossible. So long
+as the sap was fresh in the roots the magic staff could keep them in the forms
+you desired, but as the sap dried up they withered away. But never trouble
+yourself about that, dearest one, a basket of fresh turnips will soon set
+matters right, and you can speedily call up again every form you wish to see.
+The great green patch in the garden will provide you with a more lively
+company.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So saying the gnome took himself off. And the princess with her magic wand
+touched the wrinkled old women, and left them the withered roots they really
+were, to be thrown upon the rubbish heap; and with light feet skipped off
+across to the meadow to take possession of the freshly filled basket. But to
+her surprise she could not find it anywhere. Up and down the garden she
+searched, spying into every corner, but not a sign of it was to be found. By
+the trellis of grape vines she met the gnome, who was so much embarrassed at
+the sight of her that she became aware of his confusion while he was still
+quite a long way off.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You are trying to tease me,” she cried, as soon as she saw him. “Where have
+you hidden the basket? I have been looking for it at least an hour.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Dear queen of my heart,” answered he, “I pray you to forgive my carelessness.
+I promised more than I could perform. I have sought all over the land for the
+roots you desire; but they are gathered in, and lie drying in musty cellars,
+and the fields are bare and desolate, for below in the valley winter reigns,
+only here in your presence spring is held fast, and wherever your foot is set
+the gay flowers bloom. Have patience for a little, and then without fail you
+shall have your puppets to play with.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Almost before the gnome had finished, the disappointed princess turned away,
+and marched off to her own apartments, without deigning to answer him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The gnome, however, set off above ground as speedily as possible, and
+disguising himself as a farmer, bought an ass in the nearest market-town, and
+brought it back loaded with sacks of turnip, carrot, and radish seed. With this
+he sowed a great field, and sent a vast army of his goblins to watch and tend
+it, and to bring up the fiery rivers from the heart of the earth near enough to
+warm and encourage the sprouting seeds. Thus fostered they grew and flourished
+marvellously, and promised a goodly crop.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The princess wandered about the field day by day, no other plants or fruits in
+all her wonderful garden pleased her as much as these roots; but still her eyes
+were full of discontent. And, best of all, she loved to while away the hours in
+a shady fir-wood, seated upon the bank of a little stream, into which she would
+cast the flowers she had gathered and watch them float away.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The gnome tried hard by every means in his power to please the princess and win
+her love, but little did he guess the real reason of his lack of success. He
+imagined that she was too young and inexperienced to care for him; but that was
+a mistake, for the truth was that another image already filled her heart. The
+young Prince Ratibor, whose lands joined her father’s, had won the heart of the
+princess; and the lovers had been looking forward to the coming of their
+wedding-day when the bride’s mysterious disappearance took place. The sad news
+drove Ratibor distracted, and as the days went on, and nothing could be heard
+of the princess, he forsook his castle and the society of men, and spent his
+days in the wild forests, roaming about and crying her name aloud to the trees
+and rocks. Meanwhile, the maiden, in her gorgeous prison, sighed in secret over
+her grief, not wishing to arouse the gnome’s suspicions. In her own mind she
+was wondering if by any means she might escape from her captivity, and at last
+she hit upon a plan.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By this time spring once more reigned in the valley, and the gnome sent the
+fires back to their places in the deeps of the earth, for the roots which they
+had kept warm through all the cruel winter had now come to their full size.
+Day by day the princess pulled up some of them, and made experiments with them,
+conjuring up now this longed-for person, and now that, just for the pleasure of
+seeing them as they appeared; but she really had another purpose in view.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day she changed a tiny turnip into a bee, and sent him off to bring her
+some news of her lover.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Fly, dear little bee, towards the east,” said she, “to my beloved Ratibor, and
+softly hum into his ear that I love him only, but that I am a captive in the
+gnome’s palace under the mountains. Do not forget a single word of my greeting,
+and bring me back a message from my beloved.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the bee spread his shining wings and flew away to do as he was bidden; but
+before he was out of sight a greedy swallow made a snatch at him, and to the
+great grief of the princess her messenger was eaten up then and there.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After that, by the power of the wonderful wand she summoned a cricket, and
+taught him this greeting:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Hop, little cricket, to Ratibor, and chirp in his ear that I love him only,
+but that I am held captive by the gnome in his palace under the mountains.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the cricket hopped off gaily, determined to do his best to deliver his
+message; but, alas! a long-legged stork who was prancing along the same road
+caught him in her cruel beak, and before he could say a word he had disappeared
+down her throat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+These two unlucky ventures did not prevent the princess from trying once more.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This time she changed the turnip into a magpie.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Flutter from tree to tree, chattering bird,” said she, “till you come to
+Ratibor, my love. Tell him that I am a captive, and bid him come with horses
+and men, the third day from this, to the hill that rises from the Thorny
+Valley.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The magpie listened, hopped awhile from branch to branch, and then darted away,
+the princess watching him anxiously as far as she could see.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now Prince Ratibor was still spending his life in wandering about the woods,
+and not even the beauty of the spring could soothe his grief.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day, as he sat in the shade of an oak tree, dreaming of his lost princess,
+and sometimes crying her name aloud, he seemed to hear another voice reply to
+his, and, starting up, he gazed around him, but he could see no one, and he had
+just made up his mind that he must be mistaken, when the same voice called
+again, and, looking up sharply, he saw a magpie which hopped to and fro among
+the twigs. Then Ratibor heard with surprise that the bird was indeed calling
+him by name.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Poor chatterpie,” said he; “who taught you to say that name, which belongs to
+an unlucky mortal who wishes the earth would open and swallow up him and his
+memory for ever?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Thereupon he caught up a great stone, and would have hurled it at the magpie,
+if it had not at that moment uttered the name of the princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This was so unexpected that the prince’s arm fell helplessly to his side at the
+sound, and he stood motionless.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the magpie in the tree, who, like all the rest of his family, was not happy
+unless he could be for ever chattering, began to repeat the message the
+princess had taught him; and as soon as he understood it, Prince Ratibor’s
+heart was filled with joy. All his gloom and misery vanished in a moment, and
+he anxiously questioned the welcome messenger as to the fate of the princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the magpie knew no more than the lesson he had learnt, so he soon fluttered
+away; while the prince hurried back to his castle to gather together a troop of
+horsemen, full of courage for whatever might befall.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The princess meanwhile was craftily pursuing her plan of escape. She left off
+treating the gnome with coldness and indifference; indeed, there was a look in
+her eyes which encouraged him to hope that she might some day return his love,
+and the idea pleased him mightily. The next day, as soon as the sun rose, she
+made her appearance decked as a bride, in the wonderful robes and jewels which
+the fond gnome had prepared for her. Her golden hair was braided and crowned
+with myrtle blossoms, and her flowing veil sparkled with gems. In these
+magnificent garments she went to meet the gnome upon the great terrace.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Loveliest of maidens,” he stammered, bowing low before her, “let me gaze into
+your dear eyes, and read in them that you will no longer refuse my love, but
+will make me the happiest being the sun shines upon.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So saying he would have drawn aside her veil; but the princess only held it
+more closely about her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Your constancy has overcome me,” she said; “I can no longer oppose your
+wishes. But believe my words, and suffer this veil still to hide my blushes and
+tears.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why tears, beloved one?” cried the gnome anxiously; “every tear of yours falls
+upon my heart like a drop of molten gold. Greatly as I desire your love, I do
+not ask a sacrifice.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ah!” cried the false princess, “why do you misunderstand my tears? My heart
+answers to your tenderness, and yet I am fearful. A wife cannot always charm,
+and though YOU will never alter, the beauty of mortals is as a flower that
+fades. How can I be sure that you will always be as loving and charming as you
+are now?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ask some proof, sweetheart,” said he. “Put my obedience and my patience to
+some test by which you can judge of my unalterable love.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Be it so,” answered the crafty maiden. “Then give me just one proof of your
+goodness. Go! count the turnips in yonder meadow. My wedding feast must not
+lack guests. They shall provide me with bride-maidens too. But beware lest you
+deceive me, and do not miss a single one. That shall be the test of your truth
+towards me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Unwilling as the gnome was to lose sight of his beautiful bride for a moment,
+he obeyed her commands without delay, and hurried off to begin his task. He
+skipped along among the turnips as nimbly as a grasshopper, and had soon
+counted them all; but, to be quite certain that he had made no mistake, he
+thought he would just run over them again. This time, to his great annoyance,
+the number was different; so he reckoned them for the third time, but now the
+number was not the same as either of the previous ones! And this was hardly to
+be wondered at, as his mind was full of the princess’s pretty looks and words.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As for the maiden, no sooner was her deluded lover fairly out of sight than she
+began to prepare for flight. She had a fine fresh turnip hidden close at hand,
+which she changed into a spirited horse, all saddled and bridled, and,
+springing upon its back, she galloped away over hill and dale till she reached
+the Thorny Valley, and flung herself into the arms of her beloved Prince
+Ratibor.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Meanwhile the toiling gnome went through his task over and over again till his
+back ached and his head swam, and he could no longer put two and two together;
+but as he felt tolerably certain of the exact number of turnips in the field,
+big and little together, he hurried back eager to prove to his beloved one what
+a delightful and submissive husband he would be. He felt very well satisfied
+with himself as he crossed the mossy lawn to the place where he had left her;
+but, alas! she was no longer there.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He searched every thicket and path, he looked behind every tree, and gazed into
+every pond, but without success; then he hastened into the palace and rushed
+from room to room, peering into every hole and corner and calling her by name;
+but only echo answered in the marble halls—there was neither voice nor
+footstep.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then he began to perceive that something was amiss, and, throwing off the
+mortal form that encumbered him, he flew out of the palace, and soared high
+into the air, and saw the fugitive princess in the far distance just as the
+swift horse carried her across the boundary of his dominions.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Furiously did the enraged gnome fling two great clouds together, and hurl a
+thunderbolt after the flying maiden, splintering the rocky barriers which had
+stood a thousand years. But his fury was vain, the thunderclouds melted away
+into a soft mist, and the gnome, after flying about for a while in despair,
+bewailing to the four winds his unhappy fate, went sorrowfully back to the
+palace, and stole once more through every room, with many sighs and
+lamentations. He passed through the gardens which for him had lost their charm,
+and the sight of the princess’s footprints on the golden sand of the pathway
+renewed his grief. All was lonely, empty, sorrowful; and the forsaken gnome
+resolved that he would have no more dealings with such false creatures as he
+had found men to be.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Thereupon he stamped three times upon the earth, and the magic palace, with all
+its treasures, vanished away into the nothingness out of which he had called
+it; and the gnome fled once more to the depths of his underground kingdom.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+While all this was happening, Prince Ratibor was hurrying away with his prize
+to a place of safety. With great pomp and triumph he restored the lovely
+princess to her father, and was then and there married to her, and took her
+back with him to his own castle.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But long after she was dead, and her children too, the villagers would tell the
+tale of her imprisonment underground, as they sat carving wood in the winter
+nights.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Volksmärchen der Deutschen.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap29"></a>
+Story Of The King Who Would Be Stronger Than Fate</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time, far away in the east country, there lived a king who loved
+hunting so much that, when once there was a deer in sight, he was careless of
+his own safety. Indeed, he often became quite separated from his nobles and
+attendants, and in fact was particularly fond of lonely adventures. Another of
+his favourite amusements was to give out that he was not well, and could not be
+seen; and then, with the knowledge only of his faithful Grand Wazeer, to
+disguise himself as a pedlar, load a donkey with cheap wares, and travel about.
+In this way he found out what the common people said about him, and how his
+judges and governors fulfilled their duties.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day his queen presented him with a baby daughter as beautiful as the dawn,
+and the king himself was so happy and delighted that, for a whole week, he
+forgot to hunt, and spent the time in public and private rejoicing.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Not long afterwards, however, he went out after some deer which were to be
+found in a far corner of his forests. In the course of the beat his dogs
+disturbed a beautiful snow-white stag, and directly he saw it the king
+determined that he would have it at any cost. So he put the spurs to his horse,
+and followed it as hard as he could gallop. Of course all his attendants
+followed at the best speed that they could manage; but the king was so
+splendidly mounted, and the stag was so swift, that, at the end of an hour, the
+king found that only his favourite hound and himself were in the chase; all the
+rest were far, far behind and out of sight.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Nothing daunted, however, he went on and on, till he perceived that he was
+entering a valley with great rocky mountains on all sides, and that his horse
+was getting very tired and trembled at every stride. Worse than all evening was
+already drawing on, and the sun would soon set. In vain had he sent arrow after
+arrow at the beautiful stag. Every shot fell short, or went wide of the mark;
+and at last, just as darkness was setting in, he lost sight altogether of the
+beast. By this time his horse could hardly move from fatigue, his hound
+staggered panting along beside him, he was far away amongst mountains where he
+had never been before, and had quite missed his way, and not a human creature
+or dwelling was in sight.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+All this was very discouraging, but the king would not have minded if he had
+not lost that beautiful stag. That troubled him a good deal, but he never
+worried over what he could not help, so he got down from his horse, slipped his
+arm through the bridle, and led the animal along the rough path in hopes of
+discovering some shepherd’s hut, or, at least, a cave or shelter under some
+rock, where he might pass the night.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Presently he heard the sound of rushing water, and made towards it. He toiled
+over a steep rocky shoulder of a hill, and there, just below him, was a stream
+dashing down a precipitous glen, and, almost beneath his feet, twinkling and
+flickering from the level of the torrent, was a dim light as of a lamp. Towards
+this light the king with his horse and hound made his way, sliding and
+stumbling down a steep, stony path. At the bottom the king found a narrow
+grassy ledge by the brink of the stream, across which the light from a rude
+lantern in the mount of a cave shed a broad beam of uncertain light. At the
+edge of the stream sat an old hermit with a long white beard, who neither spoke
+nor moved as the king approached, but sat throwing into the stream dry leaves
+which lay scattered about the ground near him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Peace be upon you,” said the king, giving the usual country salutation.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“And upon you peace,” answered the hermit; but still he never looked up, nor
+stopped what he was doing.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For a minute or two the king stood watching him. He noticed that the hermit
+threw two leaves in at a time, and watched them attentively. Sometimes both
+were carried rapidly down by the stream; sometimes only one leaf was carried
+off, and the other, after whirling slowly round and round on the edge of the
+current, would come circling back on an eddy to the hermit’s feet. At other
+times both leaves were held in the backward eddy, and failed to reach the main
+current of the noisy stream.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What are you doing?” asked the king at last, and the hermit replied that he
+was reading the fates of men; every one’s fate, he said, was settled from the
+beginning, and, whatever it were, there was no escape from it. The king
+laughed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I care little,” he said, “what my fate may be; but I should be curious to know
+the fate of my little daughter.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I cannot say,” answered the hermit.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Do you not know, then?” demanded the king.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I might know,” returned the hermit, “but it is not always wisdom to know
+much.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the king was not content with this reply, and began to press the old man to
+say what he knew, which for a long time he would not do. At last, however, the
+king urged him so greatly that he said:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The king’s daughter will marry the son of a poor slave-girl called Puruna, who
+belongs to the king of the land of the north. There is no escaping from Fate.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The king was wild with anger at hearing these words, but he was also very
+tired; so he only laughed, and answered that he hoped there would be a way out
+of THAT fate anyhow. Then he asked if the hermit could shelter him and his
+beasts for the night, and the hermit said “Yes”; so, very soon the king had
+watered and tethered his horse, and, after a supper of bread and parched peas,
+lay down in the cave, with the hound at his feet, and tried to go to sleep. But
+instead of sleeping he only lay awake and thought of the hermit’s prophecy; and
+the more he thought of it the angrier he felt, until he gnashed his teeth and
+declared that it should never, never come true.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Morning came, and the king got up, pale and sulky, and, after learning from the
+hermit which path to take, was soon mounted and found his way home without much
+difficulty. Directly he reached his palace he wrote a letter to the king of the
+land of the north, begging him, as a favour, to sell him his slave girl Puruna
+and her son, and saying that, if he consented, he would send a messenger to
+receive them at the river which divided the kingdoms.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For five days he awaited the reply, and hardly slept or ate, but was as cross
+as could be all the time. On the fifth day his messenger returned with a letter
+to say that the king of the land of the north would not sell, but he would
+give, the king the slave girl and her son. The king was overjoyed. He sent for
+his Grand Wazeer and told him that he was going on one of his lonely
+expeditions, and that the Wazeer must invent some excuse to account for his
+absence. Next he disguised himself as an ordinary messenger, mounted a swift
+camel, and sped away to the place where the slave girl was to be handed over to
+him. When he got there he gave the messengers who brought her a letter of
+thanks and a handsome present for their master and rewards for themselves; and
+then without delay he took the poor woman and her tiny baby-boy up on to his
+camel and rode off to a wild desert.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After riding for a day and a night, almost without stopping, he came to a great
+cave where he made the woman dismount, and, taking her and the baby into the
+cave, he drew his sword and with one blow chopped her head off. But although
+his anger made him cruel enough for anything so dreadful, the king felt that he
+could not turn his great sword on the helpless baby, who he was sure must soon
+die in this solitary place without its mother; so he left it in the cave where
+it was, and, mounting his camel, rode home as fast as he could.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now, in a small village in his kingdom there lived an old widow who had no
+children or relations of any kind. She made her living mostly by selling the
+milk of a flock of goats; but she was very, very poor, and not very strong, and
+often used to wonder how she would live if she got too weak or ill to attend to
+her goats. Every morning she drove the goats out into the desert to graze on
+the shrubs and bushes which grew there, and every evening they came home of
+themselves to be milked and to be shut up safely for the night.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One evening the old woman was astonished to find that her very best nanny-goat
+returned without a drop of milk. She thought that some naughty boy or girl was
+playing a trick upon her and had caught the goat on its way home and stolen all
+the milk. But when evening after evening the goat remained almost dry she
+determined to find out who the thief was. So the next day she followed the
+goats at a distance and watched them while they grazed. At length, in the
+afternoon, the old woman noticed this particular nanny-goat stealing off by
+herself away from the herd and she at once went after her. On and on the goat
+walked for some way, and then disappeared into a cave in the rocks. The old
+woman followed the goat into the cave and then, what should she see but the
+animal giving her milk to a little boy-baby, whilst on the ground near by lay
+the sad remains of the baby’s dead mother! Wondering and frightened, the old
+woman thought at last that this little baby might be a son to her in her old
+age, and that he would grow up and in time to come be her comfort and support.
+So she carried home the baby to her hut, and next day she took a spade to the
+cave and dug a grave where she buried the poor mother.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Years passed by, and the baby grew up into a find handsome lad, as daring as he
+was beautiful, and as industrious as he was brave. One day, when the boy, whom
+the old woman had named Nur Mahomed, was about seventeen years old, he was
+coming from his day’s work in the fields, when he saw a strange donkey eating
+the cabbages in the garden which surround their little cottage. Seizing a big
+stick, he began to beat the intruder and to drive him out of his garden. A
+neighbour passing by called out to him—“Hi! I say! why are you beating the
+pedlar’s donkey like that?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The pedlar should keep him from eating my cabbages,” said Nur Mahomed; “if he
+comes this evening here again I’ll cut off his tail for him!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Whereupon he went off indoors, whistling cheerfully. It happened that this
+neighbour was one of those people who make mischief by talking too much; so,
+meeting the pedlar in the “serai,” or inn, that evening, he told him what had
+occurred, and added: “Yes; and the young spitfire said that if beating the
+donkey would not do, he would beat you also, and cut your nose off for a
+thief!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+A few days later, the pedlar having moved on, two men appeared in the village
+inquiring who it was who had threatened to ill-treat and to murder an innocent
+pedlar. They declared that the pedlar, in fear of his life, had complained to
+the king; and that they had been sent to bring the lawless person who had said
+these things before the king himself. Of course they soon found out about the
+donkey eating Nur Mahomed’s cabbages, and about the young man’s hot words; but
+although the lad assured them that he had never said anything about murdering
+anyone, they replied they were ordered to arrest him, and bring him to take his
+trial before the king. So, in spite of his protests, and the wails of his
+mother, he was carried off, and in due time brought before the king. Of course
+Nur Mahomed never guessed that the supposed pedlar happened to have been the
+king himself, although nobody knew it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But as he was very angry at what he had been told, he declared that he was
+going to make an example of this young man, and intended to teach him that even
+poor travelling pedlars could get justice in HIS country, and be protected from
+such lawlessness. However, just as he was going to pronounce some very heavy
+sentence, there was a stir in the court, and up came Nur Mahomed’s old mother,
+weeping and lamenting, and begging to be heard. The king ordered her to speak,
+and she began to plead for the boy, declaring how good he was, and how he was
+the support of her old age, and if he were put in prison she would die. The
+king asked her who she was. She replied that she was his mother.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“His mother?” said the king; “you are too old, surely, to have so young a son!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then the old woman, in her fright and distress, confessed the whole story of
+how she found the baby, and how she rescued and brought him up, and ended by
+beseeching the king for mercy.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It is easy to guess how, as the story came out, the king looked blacker and
+blacker, and more and more grim, until at last he was half fainting with rage
+and astonishment. This, then, was the baby he had left to die, after cruelly
+murdering his mother! Surely fate might have spared him this! He wished he had
+sufficient excuse to put the boy to death, for the old hermit’s prophecy came
+back to him as strongly as ever; and yet the young man had done nothing bad
+enough to deserve such a punishment. Everyone would call him a tyrant if he
+were to give such an order—in fact, he dared not try it!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At length he collected himself enough to say:—“If this young man will enlist in
+my army I will let him off. We have need of such as him, and a little
+discipline will do him good.” Still the old woman pleaded that she could not
+live without her son, and was nearly as terrified at the idea of his becoming a
+soldier as she was at the thought of his being put in prison. But at length the
+king—determined to get the youth into his clutches—pacified her by promising
+her a pension large enough to keep her in comfort; and Nur Mahomed, to his own
+great delight, was duly enrolled in the king’s army.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As a soldier Nur Mahomed seemed to be in luck. He was rather surprised, but
+much pleased, to find that he was always one of those chosen when any difficult
+or dangerous enterprise was afoot; and, although he had the narrowest escapes
+on some occasions, still, the very desperateness of the situations in which he
+found himself gave him special chances of displaying his courage. And as he was
+also modest and generous, he became a favourite with his officers and his
+comrades.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Thus it was not very surprising that, before very long, he became enrolled
+amongst the picked men of the king’s bodyguard. The fact is, that the king had
+hoped to have got him killed in some fight or another; but, seeing that, on the
+contrary, he throve on hard knocks, he was now determined to try more direct
+and desperate methods.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day, soon after Nur Mahomed had entered the bodyguard, he was selected to
+be one of the soldiers told off to escort the king through the city. The
+procession was marching on quite smoothly, when a man, armed with a dagger,
+rushed out of an alley straight towards the king. Nur Mahomed, who was the
+nearest of the guards, threw himself in the way, and received the stab that had
+been apparently intended for the king. Luckily the blow was a hurried one, and
+the dagger glanced on is breastbone, so that, although he received a severe
+wound, his youth and strength quickly got the better of it. The king was, of
+course, obliged to take some notice of this brave deed, and as a reward made
+him one of his own attendants.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After this the strange adventures the young man passed through were endless.
+Officers of the bodyguard were often sent on all sorts of secret and difficult
+errands, and such errands had a curious way of becoming necessary when Nur
+Mahomed was on duty. Once, while he was taking a journey, a foot-bridge gave
+way under him; once he was attacked by armed robbers; a rock rolled down upon
+him in a mountain pass; a heavy stone coping fell from a roof at his feet in a
+narrow city alley. Altogether, Nur Mahomed began to think that, somewhere or
+other, he had made an enemy; but he was light-hearted, and the thought did not
+much trouble him. He escaped somehow every time, and felt amused rather than
+anxious about the next adventure.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was the custom of that city that the officer for the day of the palace
+guards should receive all his food direct from the king’s kitchen. One day,
+when Nur Mahomed’s turn came to be on duty, he was just sitting down to a
+delicious stew that had been sent in from the palace, when one of those gaunt,
+hungry dogs, which, in eastern countries, run about the streets, poked his nose
+in at the open guard-room door, and looked at Nur Mahomed with mouth watering
+and nostrils working. The kind-hearted young man picked out a lump of meat,
+went to the door, and threw it outside to him. The dog pounced upon it, and
+gulped it down greedily, and was just turning to go, when it staggered, fell,
+rolled over, and died. Nur Mahomed, who had been lazily watching him, stood
+still for a moment, then he came back whistling softly. He gathered up the rest
+of his dinner and carefully wrapped it up to carry away and bury somewhere; and
+then he sent back the empty plates.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+How furious the king was when, at the next morning’s durbar, Nur Mahomed
+appeared before him fresh, alert and smiling as usual. He was determined,
+however, to try once more, and bidding the young man come into his presence
+that evening, gave orders that he was to carry a secret despatch to the
+governor of a distant province. “Make your preparations at once,” added he,
+“and be ready to start in the morning. I myself will deliver you the papers at
+the last moment.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now this province was four or five days’ journey from the palace, and the
+governor of it was the most faithful servant the king had. He could be silent
+as the grave, and prided himself on his obedience. Whilst he was an old and
+tried servant of the king’s, his wife had been almost a mother to the young
+princess ever since the queen had died some years before. It happened that, a
+little before this time, the princess had been sent away for her health to
+another remote province; and whilst she was there her old friend, the
+governor’s wife, had begged her to come and stay with them as soon as she
+could.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The princess accepted gladly, and was actually staying in the governor’s house
+at the very time when the king made up his mind to send Nur Mahomed there with
+the mysterious despatch.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+According to orders Nur Mahomed presented himself early the next morning at the
+king’s private apartments. His best horse was saddled, food placed in is
+saddle-bag, and with some money tied up in his waist-band, he was ready to
+start. The king handed over to him a sealed packet, desiring him to give it
+himself only into the hands of the governor, and to no one else. Nur Mahomed
+hid it carefully in his turban, swung himself into the saddle, and five minutes
+later rode out of the city gates, and set out on his long journey.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The weather was very hot; but Nur Mahomed thought that the sooner his precious
+letter was delivered the better; so that, by dint of riding most of each night
+and resting only in the hottest part of the day, he found himself, by noon on
+the third day, approaching the town which was his final destination.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Not a soul was to be seen anywhere; and Nur Mahomed, stiff, dry, thirsty, and
+tired, looked longingly over the wall into the gardens, and marked the
+fountains, the green grass, the shady apricot orchards, and giant mulberry
+trees, and wished he were there.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At length he reached the castle gates, and was at once admitted, as he was in
+the uniform of the king’s bodyguard. The governor was resting, the soldier
+said, and could not see him until the evening. So Nur Mahomed handed over his
+horse to an attendant, and wandered down into the lovely gardens he had seen
+from the road, and sat down in the shade to rest himself. He flung himself on
+his back and watched the birds twittering and chattering in the trees above
+him. Through the branches he could see great patches of sky where the kites
+wheeled and circled incessantly, with shrill whistling cried. Bees buzzed over
+the flowers with a soothing sound, and in a few minutes Nur Mahomed was fast
+asleep.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Every day, through the heat of the afternoon, the governor, and his wife also,
+used to lie down for two or three hours in their own rooms, and so, for the
+matter of that, did most people in the palace. But the princess, like many
+other girls, was restless, and preferred to wander about the garden, rather
+than rest on a pile of soft cushions. What a torment her stout old attendants
+and servants sometime thought her when she insisted on staying awake, and
+making them chatter or do something, when they could hardly keep their eyes
+open! Sometimes, however, the princess would pretend to go to sleep, and then,
+after all her women had gladly followed her example, she would get up and go
+out by herself, her veil hanging loosely about her. If she was discovered her
+old hostess scolded her severely; but the princess only laughed, and did the
+same thing next time.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This very afternoon the princess had left all her women asleep, and, after
+trying in vain to amuse herself indoors, she had slipped out into the great
+garden, and rambled about in all her favourite nooks and corners, feeling quite
+safe as there was not a creature to be seen. Suddenly, on turning a corner, she
+stopped in surprise, for before her lay a man fast asleep! In her hurry she had
+almost tripped over him. But there he was, a young man, tanned and dusty with
+travel, in the uniform of an officer of the king’s guard. One of the few faults
+of this lovely princess was a devouring curiosity, and she lived such an idle
+life that she had plenty of time to be curious. Out of one of the folds of this
+young man’s turban there peeped the corner of a letter! She wondered what the
+letter was—whom it was for! She drew her veil a little closer, and stole across
+on tip-toe and caught hold of the corner of the letter. Then she pulled it a
+little, and just a little more! A great big seal came into view, which she saw
+to be her father’s, and at the sight of it she paused for a minute half ashamed
+of what she was doing. But the pleasure of taking a letter which was not meant
+for her was more than she could resist, and in another moment it was in her
+hand. All at once she remembered that it would be death to this poor officer if
+he lost the letter, and that at all hazards she must put it back again. But
+this was not so easy; and, moreover, the letter in her hand burnt her with
+longing to read it, and see what was inside. She examined the seal. It was
+sticky with being exposed to the hot sun, and with a very little effort it
+parted from the paper. The letter was open and she read it! And this was what
+was written:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Behead the messenger who brings this letter secretly and at once. Ask no
+questions.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The girl grew pale. What a shame! she thought. SHE would not let a handsome
+young fellow like that be beheaded; but how to prevent it was not quite clear
+at the moment. Some plan must be invented, and she wished to lock herself in
+where no one could interrupt her, as might easily happen in the garden. So she
+crept softly to her room, and took a piece of paper and wrote upon it: “Marry
+the messenger who brings this letter to the princess openly at once. Ask no
+questions.” And even contrived to work the seals off the original letter and to
+fix them to this, so that no one could tell, unless they examined it closely,
+that it had ever been opened. Then she slipped back, shaking with fear and
+excitement, to where the young officer still lay asleep, thrust the letter into
+the fold so his turban, and hurried back to her room. It was done!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Late in the afternoon Nur Mahomed woke, and, making sure that the precious
+despatch was still safe, went off to get ready for his audience with the
+governor. As soon as he was ushered into his presence he took the letter from
+his turban and placed it in the governor’s hands according to orders. When he
+had read it the governor was certainly a little astonished; but he was told in
+the letter to “ask no questions,” and he knew how to obey orders. He sent for
+his wife and told her to get the princess ready to be married at once.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Nonsense!” said his wife, “what in the world do you mean?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“These are the king’s commands,” he answered; “go and do as I bid you. The
+letter says ‘at once,’ and ‘ask no questions.’ The marriage, therefore, must
+take place this evening.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In vain did his wife urge every objection; the more she argued, the more
+determined was her husband. “I know how to obey orders,” he said, “and these
+are as plain as the nose on my face!” So the princess was summoned, and,
+somewhat to their surprise, she seemed to take the news very calmly; next Nur
+Mahomed was informed, and he was greatly startled, but of course he could but
+be delighted at the great and unexpected honour which he thought the king had
+done him. Then all the castle was turned upside down; and when the news spread
+in the town, THAT was turned upside down too. Everybody ran everywhere, and
+tried to do everything at once; and, in the middle of it all, the old governor
+went about with his hair standing on end, muttering something about “obeying
+orders.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And so the marriage was celebrated, and there was a great feast in the castle,
+and another in the soldiers’ barracks, and illuminations all over the town and
+in the beautiful gardens. And all the people declared that such a wonderful
+sight had never been seen, and talked about it to the ends of their lives.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The next day the governor despatched the princess and her bridegroom to the
+king, with a troop of horsemen, splendidly dressed, and he sent a mounted
+messenger on before them, with a letter giving the account of the marriage to
+the king.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the king got the governor’s letter, he grew so red in the face that
+everyone thought he was going to have apoplexy. They were all very anxious to
+know what had happened, but he rushed off and locked himself into a room, where
+he ramped and raved until he was tired. Then, after awhile, he began to think
+he had better make the best of it, especially as the old governor had been
+clever enough to send him back his letter, and the king was pretty sure that
+this was in the princess’s handwriting. He was fond of his daughter, and though
+she had behaved badly, he did not wish to cut HER head off, and he did not want
+people to know the truth because it would make him look foolish. In fact, the
+more he considered the matter, the more he felt that he would be wise to put a
+good face on it, and to let people suppose that he had really brought about the
+marriage of his own free will.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So, when the young couple arrived, the king received them with all state, and
+gave his son-in-law a province to govern. Nur Mahomed soon proved himself as
+able and honourable a governor as he was a brave soldier; and, when the old
+king died, he became king in his place, and reigned long and happily.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Nur Mahomed’s old mother lived for a long time in her “son’s” palace, and died
+in peace. The princess, his wife, although she had got her husband by a trick,
+found that she could not trick HIM, and so she never tried, but busied herself
+in teaching her children and scolding her maids. As for the old hermit, no
+trace of him was ever discovered; but the cave is there, and the leaves lie
+thick in front of it unto this day.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Told the writer by an Indian.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap30"></a>
+Story of Wali Dâd the Simple-Hearted</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time there lived a poor old man whose name was Wali Dâd Gunjay, or
+Wali Dâd the Bald. He had no relations, but lived all by himself in a little
+mud hut some distance from any town, and made his living by cutting grass in
+the jungle, and selling it as fodder for horses. He only earned by this five
+halfpence a day; but he was a simple old man, and needed so little out of it,
+that he saved up one halfpenny daily, and spent the rest upon such food and
+clothing as he required.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In this way he lived for many years until, one night, he thought that he would
+count the money he had hidden away in the great earthen pot under the floor of
+his hut. So he set to work, and with much trouble he pulled the bag out on to
+the floor, and sat gazing in astonishment at the heap of coins which tumbled
+out of it. What should he do with them all? he wondered. But he never thought
+of spending the money on himself, because he was content to pass the rest of
+his days as he had been doing for ever so long, and he really had no desire for
+any greater comfort or luxury.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last he threw all the money into an old sack, which he pushed under his
+bead, and then, rolled in his ragged old blanket, he went off to sleep.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Early next morning he staggered off with his sack of money to the shop of a
+jeweller, whom he knew in the town, and bargained with him for a beautiful
+little gold bracelet. With this carefully wrapped up in his cotton waistband he
+went to the house of a rich friend, who was a travelling merchant, and used to
+wander about with his camels and merchandise through many countries. Wali Dâd
+was lucky enough to find him at home, so he sat down, and after a little talk
+he asked the merchant who was the most virtuous and beautiful lady he had ever
+met with. The merchant replied that the princess of Khaistan was renowned
+everywhere as well for the beauty of her person as for the kindness and
+generosity of her disposition.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Then,” said Wali Dâd, “next time you go that way, give her this little
+bracelet, with the respectful compliments of one who admires virtue far more
+than he desires wealth.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+With that he pulled the bracelet from his waistband, and handed it to his
+friend. The merchant was naturally much astonished, but said nothing, and made
+no objection to carrying out his friend’s plan.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Time passed by, and at length the merchant arrived in the course of his travels
+at the capital of Khaistan. As soon as he had opportunity he presented himself
+at the palace, and sent in the bracelet, neatly packed in a little perfumed box
+provided by himself, giving at the same time the message entrusted to him by
+Wali Dâd.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The princess could not think who could have bestowed this present on her, but
+she bade her servant to tell the merchant that if he would return, after he had
+finished his business in the city, she would give him her reply. In a few days,
+therefore, the merchant came back, and received from the princess a return
+present in the shape of a camel-load or rich silks, besides a present of money
+for himself. With these he set out on his journey.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Some months later he got home again from his journeyings, and proceeded to take
+Wali Dâd the princess’s present. Great was the perplexity of the good man to
+find a camel-load of silks tumbled at his door! What was he to do with these
+costly things? But, presently, after much thought, he begged the merchant to
+consider whether he did not know of some young prince to whom such treasures
+might be useful.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Of course,” cried the merchant, greatly amused; “from Delhi to Baghdad, and
+from Constantinople to Lucknow, I know them all; and there lives none worthier
+than the gallant and wealthy young prince of Nekabad.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Very well, then, take the silks to him, with the blessing of an old man,” said
+Wali Dâd, much relieved to be rid of them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So, the next time that the merchant journeyed that way he carried the silks
+with him, and in due course arrived at Nekabad, and sought an audience of the
+prince. When he was shown into his presence he produced the beautiful gift of
+silks that Wali Dâd had sent, and begged the young man to accept them as a
+humble tribute to his worth and greatness. The prince was much touched by the
+generosity of the giver, and ordered, as a return present, twelve of the finest
+breed of horses for which his country was famous to be delivered over to the
+merchant, to whom also, before he took his leave, he gave a munificent reward
+for his services.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As before, the merchant at last arrived at home; and next day, he set out for
+Wali Dâd’s house with the twelve horses. When the old man saw them coming in
+the distance he said to himself: “Here’s luck! a troop of horses coming! They
+are sure to want quantities of grass, and I shall sell all I have without
+having to drag it to market.” Thereupon he rushed off and cut grass as fast he
+could. When he got back, with as much grass as he could possibly carry, he was
+greatly discomfited to find that the horses were all for himself. At first he
+could not think what to do with them, but, after a little, a brilliant idea
+struck him! He gave two to the merchant, and begged him to take the rest to the
+princess of Khaistan, who was clearly the fittest person to possess such
+beautiful animals.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The merchant departed, laughing. But, true to his old friend’s request, he took
+the horses with him on his next journey, and eventually presented them safely
+to the princess. This time the princess sent for the merchant, and questioned
+him about the giver. Now, the merchant was usually a most honest man, but he
+did not quite like to describe Wali Dâd in his true light as an old man whose
+income was five halfpence a day, and who had hardly clothes to cover him. So he
+told her that his friend had heard stories of her beauty and goodness, and had
+longed to lay the best he had at her feet. The princess then took her father
+into her confidence, and begged him to advise her what courtesy she might
+return to one who persisted in making her such presents.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well,” said the king, “you cannot refuse them; so the best thing you can do is
+to send this unknown friend at once a present so magnificent that he is not
+likely to be able to send you anything better, and so will be ashamed to send
+anything at all!” Then he ordered that, in place of each of the ten horses, two
+mules laden with silver should be returned by her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Thus, in a few hours, the merchant found himself in charge of a splendid
+caravan; and he had to hire a number of armed men to defend it on the road
+against the robbers, and he was glad indeed to find himself back again in Wali
+Dâd’s hut.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Well, now,” cried Wali Dâd, as he viewed all the wealth laid at his door, “I
+can well repay that kind prince for his magnificent present of horses; but to
+be sure you have been put to great expenses! Still, if you will accept six
+mules and their loads, and will take the rest straight to Nekabad, I shall
+thank you heartily.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The merchant felt handsomely repaid for his trouble, and wondered greatly how
+the matter would turn out. So he made no difficulty about it; and as soon as he
+could get things ready, he set out for Nekabad with this new and princely gift.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This time the prince, too, was embarrassed, and questioned the merchant
+closely. The merchant felt that his credit was at stake, and whilst inwardly
+determining that he would not carry the joke any further, could not help
+describing Wali Dâd in such glowing terms that the old man would never have
+known himself had he heard them. The prince, like the king of Khaistan,
+determined that he would send in return a gift that would be truly royal, and
+which would perhaps prevent the unknown giver sending him anything more. So he
+made up a caravan on twenty splendid horses caparisoned in gold embroidered
+cloths, with fine morocco saddles and silver bridles and stirrups, also twenty
+camels of the best breed, which had the speed of race-horses, and could swing
+along at a trot all day without getting tired; and, lastly, twenty elephants,
+with magnificent silver howdahs and coverings of silk embroidered with pearls.
+To take care of these animals the merchant hired a little army of men; and the
+troop made a great show as they travelled along.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When Wali Dâd from a distance saw the cloud of dust which the caravan made, and
+the glitter of its appointments, he said to himself: “By Allah! here’s a grand
+crowd coming! Elephants, too! Grass will be selling well to-day!” And with that
+he hurried off to the jungle and cut grass as fast as he could. As soon as he
+got back he found the caravan had stopped at his door, and the merchant was
+waiting, a little anxiously, to tell him the news and to congratulate him upon
+his riches.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Riches!” cried Wali Dâd, “what has an old man like me with one foot in the
+grave to do with riches? That beautiful young princess, now! She’d be the one
+to enjoy all these fine things! Do you take for yourself two horses, two
+camels, and two elephants, with all their trappings, and present the rest to
+her.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The merchant at first objected to these remarks, and pointed out to Wali Dâd
+that he was beginning to feel these embassies a little awkward. Of course he
+was himself richly repaid, so far as expenses went; but still he did not like
+going so often, and he was getting nervous. At length, however he consented to
+go once more, but he promised himself never to embark on another such
+enterprise.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So, after a few days’ rest, the caravan started off once more for Khaistan.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The moment the king of Khaistan saw the gorgeous train of men and beasts
+entering his palace courtyard, he was so amazed that he hurried down in person
+to inquire about it, and became dumb when he heard that these also were a
+present from the princely Wali Dâd, and were for the princess, his daughter. He
+went hastily off to her apartments, and said to her: “I tell you what it is, my
+dear, this man wants to marry you; that is the meaning of all these presents!
+There is nothing for it but that we go and pay him a visit in person. He must
+be a man of immense wealth, and as he is so devoted to you, perhaps you might
+do worse than marry him!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The princess agreed with all that her father said, and orders were issued for
+vast numbers of elephants and camels, and gorgeous tents and flags, and litters
+for the ladies, and horses for the men, to be prepared without delay, as the
+king and princess were going to pay a visit to the great and munificent prince
+Wali Dâd. The merchant, the king declared, was to guide the party.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The feelings of the poor merchant in this sore dilemma can hardly be imagined.
+Willingly would he have run away; but he was treated with so much hospitality
+as Wali Dâd’s representative, that he hardly got an instant’s real peace, and
+never any opportunity of slipping away. In fact, after a few days, despair
+possessed him to such a degree that he made up his mind that all that happened
+was fate, and that escape was impossible; but he hoped devoutly some turn of
+fortune would reveal to him a way out of the difficulties which he had, with
+the best intentions, drawn upon himself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+On the seventh day they all started, amidst thunderous salutes from the
+ramparts of the city, and much dust, and cheering, and blaring of trumpets.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Day after day they moved on, and every day the poor merchant felt more ill and
+miserable. He wondered what kind of death the king would invent for him, and
+went through almost as much torture, as he lay awake nearly the whole of every
+night thinking over the situation, as he would have suffered if the king’s
+executioners were already setting to work upon his neck.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last they were only one day’s march from Wali Dâd’s little mud home. Here a
+great encampment was made, and the merchant was sent on to tell Wali Dâd that
+the King and Princess of Khaistan had arrived and were seeking an interview.
+When the merchant arrived he found the poor old man eating his evening meal of
+onions and dry bread, and when he told him of all that had happened he had not
+the heart to proceed to load him with the reproaches which rose to his tongue.
+For Wali Dâd was overwhelmed with grief and shame for himself, for his friend,
+and for the name and honour of the princess; and he wept and plucked at his
+beard, and groaned most piteously. With tears he begged the merchant to detain
+them for one day by any kind of excuse he could think of, and to come in the
+morning to discuss what they should do.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As soon as the merchant was gone Wali Dâd made up his mind that there was only
+one honourable way out of the shame and distress that he had created by his
+foolishness, and that was—to kill himself. So, without stopping to ask any
+one’s advice, he went off in the middle of the night to a place where the river
+wound along at the base of steep rocky cliffs of great height, and determined
+to throw himself down and put an end to his life. When he got to the place he
+drew back a few paces, took a little run, and at the very edge of that dreadful
+black gulf he stopped short! He COULD not do it!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+From below, unseen in the blackness of the deep night shadows, the water roared
+and boiled round the jagged rocks—he could picture the place as he knew it,
+only ten times more pitiless and forbidding in the visionless darkness; the
+wind soughed through the gorge with fearsome sighs, and rustlings and
+whisperings, and the bushes and grasses that grew in the ledges of the cliffs
+seemed to him like living creatures that danced and beckoned, shadowy and
+indistinct. An owl laughed “Hoo! hoo!” almost in his face, as he peered over
+the edge of the gulf, and the old man threw himself back in a perspiration of
+horror. He was afraid! He drew back shuddering, and covering his face in his
+hands he wept aloud.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Presently he was aware of a gentle radiance that shed itself before him. Surely
+morning was not already coming to hasten and reveal his disgrace! He took his
+hands from before his face, and saw before him two lovely beings whom his
+instinct told him were not mortal, but were Peris from Paradise.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why do you weep, old man?” said one, in a voice as clear and musical as that
+of the bulbul.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I weep for shame,” replied he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What do you here?” questioned the other.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I came here to die,” said Wali Dâd. And as they questioned him, he confessed
+all his story.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then the first stepped forward and laid a hand upon his shoulder, and Wali Dâd
+began to feel that something strange—what, he did not know—was happening to
+him. His old cotton rags of clothes were changed to beautiful linen and
+embroidered cloth; on his hard, bare feet were warm, soft shoes, and on his
+head a great jewelled turban. Round his neck there lay a heavy golden chain,
+and the little old bent sickle, which he cut grass with, and which hung in his
+waistband, had turned into a gorgeous scimetar, whose ivory hilt gleamed in the
+pale light like snow in moonlight. As he stood wondering, like a man in a
+dream, the other peri waved her hand and bade him turn and see; and, lo! before
+him a noble gateway stood open. And up an avenue of giant place trees the peris
+led him, dumb with amazement. At the end of the avenue, on the very spot where
+his hut had stood, a gorgeous palace appeared, ablaze with myriads of lights.
+Its great porticoes and verandahs were occupied by hurrying servants, and
+guards paced to and fro and saluted him respectfully as he drew near, along
+mossy walks and through sweeping grassy lawns where fountains were playing and
+flowers scented the air. Wali Dâd stood stunned and helpless.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Fear not,” said one of the peris; “go to your house, and learn that God
+rewards the simple-hearted.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+With these words they both disappeared and left him. He walked on, thinking
+still that he must be dreaming. Very soon he retired to rest in a splendid
+room, far grander than anything he had ever dreamed of.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When morning dawned he woke, and found that the palace, and himself, and his
+servants were all real, and that he was not dreaming after all!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+If he was dumbfounded, the merchant, who was ushered into his presence soon
+after sunrise, was much more so. He told Wali Dâd that he had not slept all
+night, and by the first streak of daylight had started to seek out his friend.
+And what a search he had had! A great stretch of wild jungle country had, in
+the night, been changed into parks and gardens; and if it had not been for some
+of Wali Dâd’s new servants, who found him and brought him to the palace, he
+would have fled away under the impression that his trouble had sent him crazy,
+and that all he saw was only imagination.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then Wali Dâd told the merchant all that had happened. By his advice he sent an
+invitation to the king and princess of Khaistan to come and be his guests,
+together with all their retinue and servants, down to the very humblest in the
+camp.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For three nights and days a great feast was held in honour of the royal guests.
+Every evening the king and his nobles were served on golden plates and from
+golden cups; and the smaller people on silver plates and from silver cups; and
+each evening each guest was requested to keep the places and cups that they had
+used as a remembrance of the occasion. Never had anything so splendid been
+seen. Besides the great dinners, there were sports and hunting, and dances, and
+amusements of all sorts.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+On the fourth day the king of Khaistan took his host aside, and asked him
+whether it was true, as he had suspected, that he wished to marry his daughter.
+But Wali Dâd, after thanking him very much for the compliment, said that he had
+never dreamed of so great an honour, and that he was far too old and ugly for
+so fair a lady; but he begged the king to stay with him until he could send for
+the Prince of Nekabad, who was a most excellent, brave, and honourable young
+man, and would surely be delighted to try to win the hand of the beautiful
+princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+To this the king agreed, and Wali Dâd sent the merchant to Nekabad, with a
+number of attendants, and with such handsome presents that the prince came at
+once, fell head over ears in love with the princess, and married her at Wali
+Dâd’s palace amidst a fresh outburst of rejoicings.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And now the King of Khaistan and the Prince and Princess of Nekabad, each went
+back to their own country; and Wali Dâd lived to a good old age, befriending
+all who were in trouble and preserving, in his prosperity, the simple-hearted
+and generous nature that he had when he was only Wali Dâd Gunjay, the grass
+cutter.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Told the author by an Indian.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap31"></a>
+Tale of a Tortoise and of a Mischievous Monkey</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time there was a country where the rivers were larger, and the
+forests deeper, than anywhere else. Hardly any men came there, and the wild
+creatures had it all to themselves, and used to play all sorts of strange games
+with each other. The great trees, chained one to the other by thick flowering
+plants with bright scarlet or yellow blossoms, were famous hiding-places for
+the monkeys, who could wait unseen, till a puma or an elephant passed by, and
+then jump on their backs and go for a ride, swinging themselves up by the
+creepers when they had had enough. Near the rivers huge tortoises were to be
+found, and though to our eyes a tortoise seems a dull, slow thing, it is
+wonderful to think how clever they were, and how often they outwitted many of
+their livelier friends.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+There was one tortoise in particular that always managed to get the better of
+everybody, and many were the tales told in the forest of his great deeds. They
+began when he was quite young, and tired of staying at home with his father and
+mother. He left them one day, and walked off in search of adventures. In a wide
+open space surrounded by trees he met with an elephant, who was having his
+supper before taking his evening bath in the river which ran close by. “Let us
+see which of us two is strongest,” said the young tortoise, marching up to the
+elephant. “Very well,” replied the elephant, much amused at the impertinence of
+the little creature; “when would you like the trial to be?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“In an hour’s time; I have some business to do first,” answered the tortoise.
+And he hastened away as fast as his short legs would carry him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In a pool of the river a whale was resting, blowing water into the air and
+making a lovely fountain. The tortoise, however, was too young and too busy to
+admire such things, and he called to the whale to stop, as he wanted to speak
+to him. “Would you like to try which of us is the stronger?” said he. The whale
+looked at him, sent up another fountain, and answered: “Oh, yes; certainly.
+When do you wish to begin? I am quite ready.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Then give me one of your longest bones, and I will fasten it to my leg. When I
+give the signal, you must pull, and we will see which can pull the hardest.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Very good,” replied the whale; and he took out one of his bones and passed it
+to the tortoise.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The tortoise picked up the end of the bone in his mouth and went back to the
+elephant. “I will fasten this to your leg,” said he, “in the same way as it is
+fastened to mine, and we must both pull as hard as we can. We shall soon see
+which is the stronger.” So he wound it carefully round the elephant’s leg, and
+tied it in a firm knot. “Now!” cried he, plunging into a thick bush behind him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The whale tugged at one end, and the elephant tugged at the other, and neither
+had any idea that he had not the tortoise for his foe. When the whale pulled
+hardest the elephant was dragged into the water; and when the elephant pulled
+the hardest the whale was hauled on to the land. They were very evenly matched,
+and the battle was a hard one.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last they were quite tired, and the tortoise, who was watching, saw that
+they could play no more. So he crept from his hiding-place, and dipping himself
+in the river, he went to the elephant and said: “I see that you really are
+stronger than I thought. Suppose we give it up for to-day?” Then he dried
+himself on some moss and went to the whale and said: “I see that you really are
+stronger than I thought. Suppose we give it up for to-day?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The two adversaries were only too glad to be allowed to rest, and believed to
+the end of their days that, after all, the tortoise was stronger than either of
+them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+A day or two later the young tortoise was taking a stroll, when he met a fox,
+and stopped to speak to him. “Let us try,” said he in a careless manner, “which
+of us can lie buried in the ground during seven years.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I shall be delighted,” answered the fox, “only I would rather that you began.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is all the same to me,” replied the tortoise; “if you come round this way
+to-morrow you will see that I have fulfilled my part of the bargain.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So he looked about for a suitable place, and found a convenient hole at the
+foot of an orange tree. He crept into it, and the next morning the fox heaped
+up the earth round him, and promised to feed him every day with fresh fruit.
+The fox so far kept his word that each morning when the sun rose he appeared to
+ask how the tortoise was getting on. “Oh, very well; but I wish you would give
+me some fruit,” replied he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Alas! the fruit is not ripe enough yet for you to eat,” answered the fox, who
+hoped that the tortoise would die of hunger long before the seven years were
+over.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh dear, oh dear! I am so hungry!” cried the tortoise.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am sure you must be; but it will be all right to-morrow,” said the fox,
+trotting off, not knowing that the oranges dropped down the hollow trunk,
+straight into the tortoise’s hole, and that he had as many as he could possibly
+eat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So the seven years went by; and when the tortoise came out of his hole he was
+as fat as ever.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now it was the fox’s turn, and he chose his hole, and the tortoise heaped the
+earth round, promising to return every day or two with a nice young bird for
+his dinner. “Well, how are you getting on?” he would ask cheerfully when he
+paid his visits.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, all right; only I wish you had brought a bird with you,” answered the fox.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I have been so unlucky, I have never been able to catch one,” replied the
+tortoise. “However, I shall be more fortunate to-morrow, I am sure.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But not many to-morrows after, when the tortoise arrived with his usual
+question: “Well, how are you getting on?” he received no answer, for the fox
+was lying in his hole quite still, dead of hunger.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By this time the tortoise was grown up, and was looked up to throughout the
+forest as a person to be feared for his strength and wisdom. But he was not
+considered a very swift runner, until an adventure with a deer added to his
+fame.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day, when he was basking in the sun, a stag passed by, and stopped for a
+little conversation. “Would you care to see which of us can run fastest?” asked
+the tortoise, after some talk. The stag thought the question so silly that he
+only shrugged his shoulders. “Of course, the victor would have the right to
+kill the other,” went on the tortoise. “Oh, on that condition I agree,”
+answered the deer; “but I am afraid you are a dead man.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is no use trying to frighten me,” replied the tortoise. “But I should like
+three days for training; then I shall be ready to start when the sun strikes on
+the big tree at the edge of the great clearing.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The first thing the tortoise did was to call his brothers and his cousins
+together, and he posted them carefully under ferns all along the line of the
+great clearing, making a sort of ladder which stretched for many miles. This
+done to his satisfaction, he went back to the starting place.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The stag was quite punctual, and as soon as the sun’s rays struck the trunk of
+the tree the stag started off, and was soon far out of the sight of the
+tortoise. Every now and then he would turn his head as he ran, and call out:
+“How are you getting on?” and the tortoise who happened to be nearest at that
+moment would answer: “All right, I am close up to you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Full of astonishment, the stag would redouble his efforts, but it was no use.
+Each time he asked: “Are you there?” the answer would come: “Yes, of course,
+where else should I be?” And the stag ran, and ran, and ran, till he could run
+no more, and dropped down dead on the grass.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And the tortoise, when he thinks about it, laughs still.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the tortoise was not the only creature of whose tricks stories were told in
+the forest. There was a famous monkey who was just as clever and more
+mischievous, because he was so much quicker on his feet and with his hands. It
+was quite impossible to catch him and give him the thrashing he so often
+deserved, for he just swung himself up into a tree and laughed at the angry
+victim who was sitting below. Sometimes, however, the inhabitants of the forest
+were so foolish as to provoke him, and then they got the worst of it. This was
+what happened to the barber, whom the monkey visited one morning, saying that
+he wished to be shaved. The barber bowed politely to his customer, and begging
+him to be seated, tied a large cloth round his neck, and rubbed his chin with
+soap; but instead of cutting off his beard, the barber made a snip at the end
+of his tail. It was only a very little bit and the monkey started up more in
+rage than in pain. “Give me back the end of my tail,” he roared, “or I will
+take one of your razors.” The barber refused to give back the missing piece, so
+the monkey caught up a razor from the table and ran away with it, and no one in
+the forest could be shaved for days, as there was not another to be got for
+miles and miles.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As he was making his way to his own particular palm-tree, where the cocoanuts
+grew, which were so useful for pelting passers-by, he met a woman who was
+scaling a fish with a bit of wood, for in this side of the forest a few people
+lived in huts near the river.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That must be hard work,” said the monkey, stopping to look; “try my knife—you
+will get on quicker.” And he handed her the razor as he spoke. A few days later
+he came back and rapped at the door of the hut. “I have called for my razor,”
+he said, when the woman appeared.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I have lost it,” answered she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If you don’t give it to me at once I will take your sardine,” replied the
+monkey, who did not believe her. The woman protested she had not got the knife,
+so he took the sardine and ran off.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+A little further along he saw a baker who was standing at the door, eating one
+of his loaves. “That must be rather dry,” said the monkey, “try my fish”; and
+the man did not need twice telling. A few days later the monkey stopped again
+at the baker’s hut. “I’ve called for that fish,” he said.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“That fish? But I have eaten it!” exclaimed the baker in dismay.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If you have eaten it I shall take this barrel of meal in exchange,” replied
+the monkey; and he walked off with the barrel under his arm.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As he went he saw a woman with a group of little girls round her, teaching them
+how to dress hair. “Here is something to make cakes for the children,” he said,
+putting down his barrel, which by this time he found rather heavy. The children
+were delighted, and ran directly to find some flat stones to bake their cakes
+on, and when they had made and eaten them, they thought they had never tasted
+anything so nice. Indeed, when they saw the monkey approaching not long after,
+they rushed to meet him, hoping that he was bringing them some more presents.
+But he took no notice of their questions, he only said to their mother: “I’ve
+called for my barrel of meal.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Why, you gave it to me to make cakes of!” cried the mother.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“If I can’t get my barrel of meal, I shall take one of your children,” answered
+the monkey. “I am in want of somebody who can bake my bread when I am tired of
+fruit, and who knows how to make cocoanut cakes.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, leave me my child, and I will find you another barrel of meal,” wept the
+mother.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I don’t WANT another barrel, I want THAT one,” answered the monkey sternly.
+And as the woman stood wringing her hands, he caught up the little girl that he
+thought the prettiest and took her to his home in the palm tree.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+She never went back to the hut, but on the whole she was not much to be pitied,
+for monkeys are nearly as good as children to play with, and they taught her
+how to swing, and to climb, and to fly from tree to tree, and everything else
+they knew, which was a great deal.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the monkey’s tiresome tricks had made him many enemies in the forest, but
+no one hated him so much as the puma. The cause of their quarrel was known only
+to themselves, but everybody was aware of the fact, and took care to be out of
+the way when there was any chance of these two meeting. Often and often the
+puma had laid traps for the monkey, which he felt sure his foe could not
+escape; and the monkey would pretend that he saw nothing, and rejoice the
+hidden puma’s heart by seeming to walk straight into the snare, when, lo! a
+loud laugh would be heard, and the monkey’s grinning face would peer out of a
+mass of creepers and disappear before his foe could reach him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This state of things had gone on for quite a long while, when at last there
+came a season such as the oldest parrot in the forest could never remember.
+Instead of two or three hundred inches of rain falling, which they were all
+accustomed to, month after month passed without a cloud, and the rivers and
+springs dried up, till there was only one small pool left for everyone to drink
+from. There was not an animal for miles round that did not grieve over this
+shocking condition of affairs, not one at least except the puma. His only
+thought for years had been how to get the monkey into his power, and this time
+he imagined his chance had really arrived. He would hide himself in a thicket,
+and when the monkey came down to drink—and come he must—the puma would spring
+out and seize him. Yes, on this occasion there could be no escape!
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And no more there would have been if the puma had had greater patience; but in
+his excitement he moved a little too soon. The monkey, who was stooping to
+drink, heard a rustling, and turning caught the gleam of two yellow, murderous
+eyes. With a mighty spring he grasped a creeper which was hanging above him,
+and landed himself on the branch of a tree; feeling the breath of the puma on
+his feet as the animal bounded from is cover. Never had the monkey been so near
+death, and it was some time before he recovered enough courage to venture on
+the ground again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Up there in the shelter of the trees, he began to turn over in his head plans
+for escaping the snares of the puma. And at length chance helped him. Peeping
+down to the earth, he saw a man coming along the path carrying on his head a
+large gourd filled with honey.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He waited till the man was just underneath the tree, then he hung from a bough,
+and caught the gourd while the man looked up wondering, for he was no
+tree-climber. Then the monkey rubbed the honey all over him, and a quantity of
+leaves from a creeper that was hanging close by; he stuck them all close
+together into the honey, so that he looked like a walking bush. This finished,
+he ran to the pool to see the result, and, quite pleased with himself, set out
+in search of adventures.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Soon the report went through the forest that a new animal had appeared from no
+one knew where, and that when somebody had asked his name, the strange creature
+had answered that it was Jack-in-the-Green. Thanks to this, the monkey was
+allowed to drink at the pool as often as he liked, for neither beast nor bird
+had the faintest notion who he was. And if they made any inquiries the only
+answer they got was that the water of which he had drunk deeply had turned his
+hair into leaves, so that they all knew what would happen in case they became
+too greedy.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By-and-by the great rains began again. The rivers and streams filled up, and
+there was no need for him to go back to the pool, near the home of his enemy,
+the puma, as there was a large number of places for him to choose from. So one
+night, when everything was still and silent, and even the chattering parrots
+were asleep on one leg, the monkey stole down softly from his perch, and washed
+off the honey and the leaves, and came out from his bath in his own proper
+skin. On his way to breakfast he met a rabbit, and stopped for a little talk.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am feeling rather dull,” he remarked; “I think it would do me good to hunt a
+while. What do you say?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, I am quite willing,” answered the rabbit, proud of being spoken to by such
+a large creature. “But the question is, what shall we hunt?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“There is no credit in going after an elephant or a tiger,” replied the monkey
+stroking his chin, “they are so big they could not possibly get out of your
+way. It shows much more skill to be able to catch a small thing that can hide
+itself in a moment behind a leaf. I’ll tell you what! Suppose I hunt
+butterflies, and you, serpents.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The rabbit, who was young and without experience, was delighted with this idea,
+and they both set out on their various ways.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The monkey quietly climbed up the nearest tree, and ate fruit most of the day,
+but the rabbit tired himself to death poking his nose into every heap of dried
+leaves he saw, hoping to find a serpent among them. Luckily for himself the
+serpents were all away for the afternoon, at a meeting of their own, for there
+is nothing a serpent likes so well for dinner as a nice plump rabbit. But, as
+it was, the dried leaves were all empty, and the rabbit at last fell asleep
+where he was. Then the monkey, who had been watching him, fell down and pulled
+his ears, to the rage of the rabbit, who vowed vengeance.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was not easy to catch the monkey off his guard, and the rabbit waited long
+before an opportunity arrived. But one day Jack-in-the-Green was sitting on a
+stone, wondering what he should do next, when the rabbit crept softly behind
+him, and gave his tail a sharp pull. The monkey gave a shriek of pain, and
+darted up into a tree, but when he saw that it was only the rabbit who had
+dared to insult him so, he chattered so fast in his anger, and looked so
+fierce, that the rabbit fled into the nearest hole, and stayed there for
+several days, trembling with fright.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Soon after this adventure the monkey went away into another part of the
+country, right on the outskirts of the forest, where there was a beautiful
+garden full of oranges hanging ripe from the trees. This garden was a favourite
+place for birds of all kinds, each hoping to secure an orange for dinner, and
+in order to frighten the birds away and keep a little fruit for himself, the
+master had fastened a waxen figure on one of the boughs.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the monkey was as fond of oranges as any of the birds, and when he saw a
+man standing in the tree where the largest and sweetest oranges grew, he spoke
+to him at once. “You man,” he said rudely, “throw me down that big orange up
+there, or I will throw a stone at you.” The wax figure took no notice of this
+request, so the monkey, who was easily made angry, picked up a stone, and flung
+it with all his force. But instead of falling to the ground again, the stone
+stuck to the soft wax.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At this moment a breeze shook the tree, and the orange on which the monkey had
+set his heart dropped from the bough. He picked it up and ate it every bit,
+including the rind, and it was so good he thought he should like another. So he
+called again to the wax figure to throw him an orange, and as the figure did
+not move, he hurled another stone, which stuck to the wax as the first had
+done. Seeing that the man was quite indifferent to stones, the monkey grew more
+angry still, and climbing the tree hastily, gave the figure a violent kick. But
+like the two stones his leg remained stuck to the wax, and he was held fast.
+“Let me go at once, or I will give you another kick,” he cried, suiting the
+action to the word, and this time also his foot remained in the grasp of the
+man. Not knowing what he did, the monkey hit out, first with one hand and then
+with the other, and when he found that he was literally bound hand and foot, he
+became so mad with anger and terror that in his struggles he fell to the
+ground, dragging the figure after him. This freed his hands and feet, but
+besides the shock of the fall, they had tumbled into a bed of thorns, and he
+limped away broken and bruised, and groaning loudly; for when monkeys ARE hurt,
+they take pains that everybody shall know it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was a long time before Jack was well enough to go about again; but when he
+did, he had an encounter with his old enemy the puma. And this was how it came
+about.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+One day the puma invited his friend the stag to go with him and see a comrade,
+who was famous for the good milk he got from his cows. The stag loved milk, and
+gladly accepted the invitation, and when the sun began to get a little low the
+two started on their walk. On the way they arrived on the banks of a river, and
+as there were no bridges in those days it was necessary to swim across it. The
+stag was not fond of swimming, and began to say that he was tired, and thought
+that after all it was not worth going so far to get milk, and that he would
+return home. But the puma easily saw through these excuses, and laughed at him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The river is not deep at all,” he said; “why, you will never be off your feet.
+Come, pluck up your courage and follow me.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The stag was afraid of the river; still, he was much more afraid of being
+laughed at, and he plunged in after the puma; but in an instant the current had
+swept him away, and if it had not borne him by accident to a shallow place on
+the opposite side, where he managed to scramble up the bank, he would certainly
+have been drowned. As it was, he scrambled out, shaking with terror, and found
+the puma waiting for him. “You had a narrow escape that time,” said the puma.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+After resting for a few minutes, to let the stag recover from his fright, they
+went on their way till they came to a grove of bananas.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“They look very good,” observed the puma with a longing glance, “and I am sure
+you must be hungry, friend stag? Suppose you were to climb the tree and get
+some. You shall eat the green ones, they are the best and sweetest; and you can
+throw the yellow ones down to me. I dare say they will do quite well!” The stag
+did as he was bid, though, not being used to climbing, it gave him a deal of
+trouble and sore knees, and besides, his horns were continually getting
+entangled in the creepers. What was worse, when once he had tasted the bananas,
+he found them not at all to his liking, so he threw them all down, green and
+yellow alike, and let the puma take his choice. And what a dinner he made! When
+he had QUITE done, they set forth once more.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The path lay through a field of maize, where several men were working. As they
+came up to them, the puma whispered: “Go on in front, friend stag, and just say
+‘Bad luck to all workers!’” The stag obeyed, but the men were hot and tired,
+and did not think this a good joke. So they set their dogs at him, and he was
+obliged to run away as fast as he could.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I hope your industry will be rewarded as it deserves,” said the puma as he
+passed along; and the men were pleased, and offered him some of their maize to
+eat.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By-and-by the puma saw a small snake with a beautiful shining skin, lying
+coiled up at the foot of a tree. “What a lovely bracelet that would make for
+your daughter, friend stag! said he. The stag stooped and picked up the snake,
+which bit him, and he turned angrily to the puma. “Why did you not tell me it
+would bite?” he asked.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Is it my fault if you are an idiot?” replied the puma.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At last they reached their journey’s end, but by this time it was late, and the
+puma’s comrade was ready for bed, so they slung their hammocks in convenient
+places, and went to sleep. But in the middle of the night the puma rose softly
+and stole out of the door to the sheep-fold, where he killed and ate the
+fattest sheep he could find, and taking a bowl full of its blood, he sprinkled
+the sleeping stag with it. This done, he returned to bed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In the morning the shepherd went as usual to let the sheep out of the fold, and
+found one of them missing. He thought directly of the puma, and ran to accuse
+him of having eaten the sheep. “I, my good man? What had put it into your head
+to think of such a thing? Have I got any blood about me? If anyone has eaten a
+sheep it must be my friend the stag.” Then the shepherd went to examine the
+sleeping stag, and of course he saw the blood. “Ah! I will teach you how to
+steal!” cried he, and he hit the stag such a blow on his skull that he died in
+a moment. The noise awakened the comrade above, and he came downstairs. The
+puma greeted him with joy, and begged he might have some of the famous milk as
+soon as possible, for he was very thirsty. A large bucket was set before the
+puma directly. He drank it to the last drop, and then took leave.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+On his way home he met the monkey. “Are you fond of milk?” asked he. “I know a
+place where you get it very nice. I will show you it if you like.” The monkey
+knew that the puma was not so good-natured for nothing, but he felt quite able
+to take care of himself, so he said he should have much pleasure in
+accompanying his friend.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+They soon reached the same river, and, as before, the puma remarked: “Friend
+monkey, you will find it very shallow; there is no cause for fear. Jump in and
+I will follow.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Do you think you have the stag to deal with?” asked the monkey, laughing. “I
+should prefer to follow; if not I shall go no further. The puma understood that
+it was useless trying to make the monkey do as he wished, so he chose a shallow
+place and began to swim across. The monkey waited till the puma had got to the
+middle, then he gave a great spring and jumped on his back, knowing quite well
+that the puma would be afraid to shake him off, lest he should be swept away
+into deep water. So in this manner they reached the bank.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The banana grove was not far distant, and here the puma thought he would pay
+the monkey out for forcing him to carry him over the river. “Friend monkey,
+look what fine bananas,” cried he. “You are fond of climbing; suppose you run
+up and throw me down a few. You can eat the green ones, which are the nicest,
+and I will be content with the yellow.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Very well,” answered the monkey, swinging himself up; but he ate all the
+yellow ones himself, and only threw down the green ones that were left. The
+puma was furious and cried out: “I will punch your head for that.” But the
+monkey only answered: “If you are gong to talk such nonsense I won’t walk with
+you.” And the puma was silent.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+In a few minutes more they arrived at the field were the men were reaping the
+maize, and the puma remarked as he had done before: “Friend monkey, if you wish
+to please these men, just say as you go by: ‘Bad luck to all workers.’
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Very well,” replied the monkey; but, instead, he nodded and smiled, and said:
+“I hope your industry may be rewarded as it deserves.” The men thanked him
+heartily, let him pass on, and the puma followed behind him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Further along the path they saw the shining snake lying on the moss. “What a
+lovely necklace for your daughter,” exclaimed the puma. “Pick it up and take it
+with you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You are very kind, but I will leave it for you,” answered the monkey, and
+nothing more was said about the snake.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Not long after this they reached the comrade’s house, and found him just ready
+to go to bed. So, without stopping to talk, the guests slung their hammocks,
+the monkey taking care to place his so high that no one could get at him.
+Besides, he thought it would be more prudent not to fall asleep, so he only lay
+still and snored loudly. When it was quite dark and no sound was to be heard,
+the puma crept out to the sheep-fold, killed the sheep, and carried back a bowl
+full of its blood with which to sprinkle the monkey. But the monkey, who had
+been watching out of the corner of his eye, waited until the puma drew near,
+and with a violent kick upset the bowl all over the puma himself.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+When the puma saw what had happened, he turned in a great hurry to leave the
+house, but before he could do so, he saw the shepherd coming, and hastily lay
+down again.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“This is the second time I have lost a sheep,” the man said to the monkey; “it
+will be the worse for the thief when I catch him, I can tell you.” The monkey
+did not answer, but silently pointed to the puma who was pretending to be
+asleep. The shepherd stooped and saw the blood, and cried out: “Ah! so it is
+you, is it? then take that!” and with his stick he gave the puma such a blow on
+the head that he died then and there.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then the monkey got up and went to the dairy, and drank all the milk he could
+find. Afterwards he returned home and married, and that is the last we heard of
+him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[Adapted from Folk-lore Bresilien.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<h2><a name="chap32"></a>
+The Knights of the Fish</h2>
+
+<p>
+Once upon a time there lived an old cobbler who worked hard at his trade from
+morning till night, and scarcely gave himself a moment to eat. But, industrious
+as he was, he could hardly buy bread and cheese for himself and his wife, and
+they grew thinner and thinner daily.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+For a long while whey pretended to each other that they had no appetite, and
+that a few blackberries from the hedges were a great deal nicer than a good
+strong bowl of soup. But at length there came a day when the cobbler could bear
+it no longer, and he threw away his last, and borrowing a rod from a neighbour
+he went out to fish.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Now the cobbler was as patient about fishing as he had been about cobbling.
+From dawn to dark he stood on the banks of the little stream, without hooking
+anything better than an eel, or a few old shoes, that even he, clever though he
+was, felt were not worth mending. At length his patience began to give way, and
+as he undressed one night he said to himself: “Well, I will give it one more
+chance; and if I don’t catch a fish to-morrow, I will go and hang myself.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He had not cast his line for ten minutes the next morning before he drew from
+the river the most beautiful fish he had ever seen in his life. But he nearly
+fell into the water from surprise, when the fish began to speak to him, in a
+small, squeaky voice:
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Take me back to your hut and cook me; then cut me up, and sprinkle me over
+with pepper and salt. Give two of the pieces to your wife, and bury two more in
+the garden.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The cobbler did not know what to make of these strange words; but he was wiser
+than many people, and when he did not understand, he thought it was well to
+obey. His children wanted to eat all the fish themselves, and begged their
+father to tell them what to do with the pieces he had put aside; but the
+cobbler only laughed, and told them it was no business of theirs. And when they
+were safe in bed he stole out and buried the two pieces in the garden.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+By and by two babies, exactly alike, lay in a cradle, and in the garden were
+two tall plants, with two brilliant shields on the top.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Years passed away, and the babies were almost men. They were tired of living
+quietly at home, being mistaken for each other by everybody they saw, and
+determined to set off in different directions, to seek adventures.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So, one fine morning, the two brothers left the hut, and walked together to the
+place where the great road divided. There they embraced and parted, promising
+that if anything remarkable had happened to either, he would return to the
+cross roads and wait till his brother came.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The youth who took the path that ran eastwards arrived presently at a large
+city, where he found everybody standing at the doors, wringing their hands and
+weeping bitterly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What is the matter?” asked he, pausing and looking round. And a man replied,
+in a faltering voice, that each year a beautiful girl was chosen by lot to be
+offered up to a dreadful fiery dragon, who had a mother even worse than
+himself, and this year the lot had fallen on their peerless princess.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“But where IS the princess?” said the young man once more, and again the man
+answered him: “She is standing under a tree, a mile away, waiting for the
+dragon.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+This time the Knight of the Fish did not stop to hear more, but ran off as fast
+as he could, and found the princess bathed in tears, and trembling from head to
+foot.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+She turned as she heard the sound of his sword, and removed her handkerchief
+from his eyes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Fly,” she cried; “fly while you have yet time, before that monster sees you.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+She said it, and she mean it; yet, when he had turned his back, she felt more
+forsaken than before. But in reality it was not more than a few minutes before
+he came back, galloping furiously on a horse he had borrowed, and carrying a
+huge mirror across its neck.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am in time, then,” he cried, dismounting very carefully, and placing the
+mirror against the trunk of a tree.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Give me your veil,” he said hastily to the princess. And when she had unwound
+it from her head he covered the mirror with it.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“The moment the dragon comes near you, you must tear off the veil,” cried he;
+“and be sure you hide behind the mirror. Have no fear; I shall be at hand.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+He and his horse had scarcely found shelter amongst some rocks, when the flap
+of the dragon’s wings could be plainly heard. He tossed his head with delight
+at the sight of her, and approached slowly to the place where she stood, a
+little in front of the mirror. Then, still looking the monster steadily in the
+face, she passed one hand behind her back and snatched off the veil, stepping
+swiftly behind the tree as she did so.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The princess had not known, when she obeyed the orders of the Knight of the
+Fish, what she expected to happen. Would the dragon with snaky locks be turned
+to stone, she wondered, like the dragon in an old story her nurse had told her;
+or would some fiery spark dart from the heart of the mirror, and strike him
+dead? Neither of these things occurred, but, instead, the dragon stopped short
+with surprise and rage when he saw a monster before him as big and strong as
+himself. He shook his mane with rage and fury; the enemy in front did exactly
+the same. He lashed his tail, and rolled his red eyes, and the dragon opposite
+was no whit behind him. Opening his mouth to its very widest, he gave an awful
+roar; but the other dragon only roared back. This was too much, and with
+another roar which made the princess shake in her shoes, he flung himself upon
+his foe. In an instant the mirror lay at his feet broken into a thousand
+pieces, but as every piece reflected part of himself, the dragon thought that
+he too had been smashed into atoms.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It was the moment for which the Knight of the Fish had watched and waited, and
+before the dragon could find out that he was not hurt at all, the young man’s
+lance was down his throat, and he was rolling, dead, on the grass.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Oh! what shouts of joy rang through the great city, when the youth came riding
+back with the princess sitting behind him, and dragging the horrible monster by
+a cord. Everybody cried out that the king must give the victor the hand of the
+princess; and so he did, and no one had ever seen such balls and feasts and
+sports before. And when they were all over the young couple went to the palace
+prepared for them, which was so large that it was three miles round.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The first wet day after their marriage the bridegroom begged the bride to show
+him all the rooms in the palace, and it was so big and took so long that the
+sun was shining brightly again before they stepped on to the roof to see the
+view.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What castle is that out there,” asked the knight; “it seems to be made of
+black marble?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“It is called the castle of Albatroz,” answered the princess. “It is enchanted,
+and no one that has tried to enter it has ever come back.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Her husband said nothing, and began to talk of something else; but the next
+morning he ordered his horse, took his spear, called his bloodhound, and set
+off for the castle.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+It needed a brave man to approach it, for it made your hair stand on end merely
+to look at it; it was as dark as the night of a storm, and as silent as the
+grave. But the Knight of the Fish knew no fear, and had never turned his back
+on an enemy; so he drew out his horn, and blew a blast.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The sound awoke all the sleeping echoes in the castle, and was repeated now
+loudly, now softly; now near, and now far. But nobody stirred for all that.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Is there anyone inside?” cried the young man in his loudest voice; “anyone who
+will give a knight hospitality? Neither governor, nor squire, not even a page?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Not even a page!” answered the echoes. But the young man did not heed them,
+and only struck a furious blow at the gate.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Then a small grating opened, and there appeared the tip of a huge nose, which
+belonged to the ugliest old woman that ever was seen.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“What do you want?” said she.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“To enter,” he answered shortly. “Can I rest here this night? Yes or No?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“No, No, No!” repeated the echoes.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Between the fierce sun and his anger at being kept waiting, the Knight of the
+Fish had grown so hot that he lifted his visor, and when the old woman saw how
+handsome he was, she began fumbling with the lock of the gate.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Come in, come in,” said she, “so fine a gentleman will do us no harm.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Harm!” repeated the echoes, but again the young man paid no heed.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Let us go in, ancient dame,” but she interrupted him.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“You must call me the Lady Berberisca,” she answered, sharply; “and this is my
+castle, to which I bid you welcome. You shall live here with me and be my
+husband.” But at these words the knight let his spear fall, so surprised was
+he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I marry YOU? why you must be a hundred at least!” cried he. “You are mad! All
+I desire is to inspect the castle and then go.” As he spoke he heard the voices
+give a mocking laugh; but the old woman took no notice, and only bade the
+knight follow her.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Old though she was, it seemed impossible to tire her. There was no room,
+however small, she did not lead him into, and each room was full of curious
+things he had never seen before.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At length they came to a stone staircase, which was so dark that you could not
+see your hand if you held it up before your face.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I have kept my most precious treasure till the last,” said the old woman; “but
+let me go first, for the stairs are steep, and you might easily break your
+leg.” So on she went, now and then calling back to the young man in the
+darkness. But he did not know that she had slipped aside into a recess, till
+suddenly he put his foot on a trap door which gave way under him, and he fell
+down, down, as many good knights had done before him, and his voice joined the
+echoes of theirs.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“So you would not marry me!” chuckled the old witch. “Ha! ha! Ha! ha!”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Meanwhile his brother had wandered far and wide, and at last he wandered back
+to the same great city where the other young knight had met with so many
+adventures. He noticed, with amazement, that as he walked through the streets
+the guards drew themselves up in line, and saluted him, and the drummers played
+the royal march; but he was still more bewildered when several servants in
+livery ran up to him and told him that the princess was sure something terrible
+had befallen him, and had made herself ill with weeping. At last it occurred to
+him that once more he had been taken for his brother. “I had better say
+nothing,” thought he; “perhaps I shall be able to help him after all.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+So he suffered himself to be borne in triumph to the palace, where the princess
+threw herself into his arms.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“And so you did go to the castle?” she asked.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Yes, of course I did,” answered he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“And what did you see there?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I am forbidden to tell you anything about it, until I have returned there once
+more,” replied he.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Must you really go back to that dreadful place?” she asked wistfully. “You are
+the only man who has ever come back from it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I must,” was all he answered. And the princess, who was a wise woman, only
+said: “Well, go to bed now, for I am sure you must be very tired.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+But the knight shook his head. “I have sworn never to lie in a bed as long as
+my work in the castle remains standing.” And the princess again sighed, and was
+silent.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+Early next day the young man started for the castle, feeling sure that some
+terrible thing must have happened to his brother.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+At the blast of his horn the long nose of the old woman appeared at the
+grating, but the moment she caught sight of his face, she nearly fainted from
+fright, as she thought it was the ghost of the youth whose bones were lying in
+the dungeon of the castle.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Lady of all the ages,” cried the new comer, “did you not give hospitality to a
+young knight but a short time ago?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“A short time ago!” wailed the voices.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“And how have you ill-treated him?” he went on.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Ill-treated him!” answered the voices. The woman did not stop to hear more;
+she turned to fly; but the knight’s sword entered her body.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Where is my brother, cruel hag?” asked he sternly.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“I will tell you,” said she; “but as I feel that I am going to die I shall keep
+that piece of news to myself, till you have brought me to life again.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The young man laughed scornfully. “How do you propose that I should work that
+miracle?”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+“Oh, it is quite easy. Go into the garden and gather the flowers of the
+everlasting plant and some of dragon’s blood. Crush them together and boil them
+in a large tub of water, and then put me into it.”
+</p>
+
+<p>
+The knight did as the old witch bade him, and, sure enough, she came out quite
+whole, but uglier than ever. She then told the young man what had become of his
+brother, and he went down into the dungeon, and brought up his body and the
+bodies of the other victims who lay there, and when they were all washed in the
+magic water their strength was restored to them.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+And, besides these, he found in another cavern the bodies of the girls who had
+been sacrificed to the dragon, and brought them back to life also.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+As to the old witch, in the end she died of rage at seeing her prey escape her;
+and at the moment she drew her last breath the castle of Albatroz fell into
+ruins with a great noise.
+</p>
+
+<p>
+[From Cuentos, Oraciones, Adivinas recogidos por Fernan Caballaro.]
+</p>
+
+</div><!--end chapter-->
+
+<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BROWN FAIRY BOOK ***</div>
+<div style='text-align:left'>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
+be renamed.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
+law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
+so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
+States without permission and without paying copyright
+royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
+of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
+Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
+concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
+and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
+the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
+of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
+copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
+easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
+of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
+Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
+do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
+by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
+license, especially commercial redistribution.
+</div>
+
+<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
+<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
+<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
+Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
+Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
+www.gutenberg.org/license.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
+destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
+possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
+Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
+by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
+or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
+agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
+Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
+of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
+works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
+States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
+United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
+claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
+displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
+all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
+that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
+free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
+Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
+comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
+same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
+you share it without charge with others.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
+in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
+check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
+agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
+distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
+other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
+representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
+country other than the United States.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
+immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
+prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
+on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
+phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
+performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
+</div>
+
+<blockquote>
+ <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+ This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
+ other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
+ whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
+ of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
+ at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
+ are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
+ of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
+ </div>
+</blockquote>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
+derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
+contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
+copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
+the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
+redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
+Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
+either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
+obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
+additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
+will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
+posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
+beginning of this work.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg&#8482; License.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
+any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
+to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
+other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
+version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
+(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
+to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
+of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
+Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
+full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
+provided that:
+</div>
+
+<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
+ <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
+ &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
+ to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
+ agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
+ Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
+ within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
+ legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
+ payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
+ Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
+ Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
+ Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
+ </div>
+
+ <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
+ &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+ License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
+ copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
+ all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+ works.
+ </div>
+
+ <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
+ &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
+ any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
+ receipt of the work.
+ </div>
+
+ <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
+ &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
+Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
+are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
+from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
+the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
+forth in Section 3 below.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.F.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
+Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
+contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
+or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
+other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
+cannot be read by your equipment.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
+of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
+with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
+with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
+lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
+or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
+opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
+the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
+without further opportunities to fix the problem.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
+OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
+damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
+violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
+agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
+limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
+unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
+remaining provisions.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
+accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
+production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
+including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
+the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
+or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
+additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
+Defect you cause.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
+computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
+exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
+from people in all walks of life.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
+generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
+Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
+U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
+Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
+to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
+and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
+public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
+DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
+visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
+donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
+Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
+freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
+distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
+volunteer support.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
+the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
+necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
+edition.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
+facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
+</div>
+
+<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
+This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+</div>
+
+</div>
+
+</body>
+
+</html>